CHAPTER
1. Loomings.
Call
me Ishmael. Some years ago—never mind how long precisely—having little or no
money in my purse, and nothing particular to interest me on shore, I thought I
would sail about a little and see the watery part of the world. It is a way I
have of driving off the spleen and regulating the circulation. Whenever I find
myself growing grim about the
mouth; whenever it is a damp, drizzly November in my soul; whenever I find myself involuntarily pausing before coffin warehouses, and bringing up the rear of every funeral I meet; and especially whenever my hypos get such an upper hand of me, that it requires a strong moral principle to prevent me from deliberately stepping into the street, and methodically knocking people's hats off—then, I account it high time to get to sea as soon as I can. This is my substitute for pistol and ball. With a philosophical flourish Cato throws himself upon his sword; I quietly take to the ship. There is nothing surprising in this. If they but knew it, almost all men in their degree, some time or other, cherish very nearly the same feelings towards the ocean with me.
mouth; whenever it is a damp, drizzly November in my soul; whenever I find myself involuntarily pausing before coffin warehouses, and bringing up the rear of every funeral I meet; and especially whenever my hypos get such an upper hand of me, that it requires a strong moral principle to prevent me from deliberately stepping into the street, and methodically knocking people's hats off—then, I account it high time to get to sea as soon as I can. This is my substitute for pistol and ball. With a philosophical flourish Cato throws himself upon his sword; I quietly take to the ship. There is nothing surprising in this. If they but knew it, almost all men in their degree, some time or other, cherish very nearly the same feelings towards the ocean with me.
There
now is your insular city of the Manhattoes, belted round by wharves as Indian
isles by coral reefs—commerce surrounds it with her surf. Right and left, the
streets take you waterward. Its extreme downtown is the battery, where that
noble mole is washed by waves, and cooled by breezes, which a few hours
previous were out of sight of land. Look at the crowds of water-gazers there.
Circumambulate
the city of a dreamy Sabbath afternoon. Go from Corlears Hook to Coenties Slip,
and from thence, by Whitehall, northward. What do you see?—Posted like silent
sentinels all around the town, stand thousands upon thousands of mortal men
fixed in ocean reveries. Some leaning against the spiles; some seated upon the
pier-heads; some looking over the bulwarks of ships from China; some high aloft
in the rigging, as if striving to get a still better seaward peep. But these
are all landsmen; of week days pent up in lath and plaster—tied to counters,
nailed to benches, clinched to desks. How then is this? Are the green fields
gone? What do they here?
But
look! here come more crowds, pacing straight for the water, and seemingly bound
for a dive. Strange! Nothing will content them but the extremest limit of the
land; loitering under the shady lee of yonder warehouses will not suffice. No.
They must get just as nigh the water as they possibly can without falling in.
And there they stand—miles of them—leagues. Inlanders all, they come from lanes
and alleys, streets and avenues—north, east, south, and west. Yet here they all
unite. Tell me, does the magnetic virtue of the needles of the compasses of all
those ships attract them thither?
Once
more. Say you are in the country; in some high land of lakes. Take almost any
path you please, and ten to one it carries you down in a dale, and leaves you
there by a pool in the stream. There is magic in it. Let the most absent-minded
of men be plunged in his deepest reveries—stand that man on his legs, set his
feet a-going, and he will infallibly lead you to water, if water there be in
all that region. Should you ever be athirst in the great American desert, try
this experiment, if your caravan happen to be supplied with a metaphysical
professor. Yes, as every one knows, meditation and water are wedded for ever.
But
here is an artist. He desires to paint you the dreamiest, shadiest, quietest,
most enchanting bit of romantic landscape in all the valley of the Saco. What
is the chief element he employs? There stand his trees, each with a hollow
trunk, as if a hermit and a crucifix were within; and here sleeps his meadow,
and there sleep his cattle; and up from yonder cottage goes a sleepy smoke.
Deep into distant woodlands winds a mazy way, reaching to overlapping spurs of
mountains bathed in their hill-side blue. But though the picture lies thus
tranced, and though this pine-tree shakes down its sighs like leaves upon this
shepherd's head, yet all were vain, unless the shepherd's eye were fixed upon
the magic stream before him. Go visit the Prairies in June, when for scores on
scores of miles you wade knee-deep among Tiger-lilies—what is the one charm
wanting?—Water—there is not a drop of water there! Were Niagara but a cataract
of sand, would you travel your thousand miles to see it? Why did the poor poet
of Tennessee, upon suddenly receiving two handfuls of silver, deliberate
whether to buy him a coat, which he sadly needed, or invest his money in a
pedestrian trip to Rockaway Beach? Why is almost every robust healthy boy with
a robust healthy soul in him, at some time or other crazy to go to sea? Why
upon your first voyage as a passenger, did you yourself feel such a mystical
vibration, when first told that you and your ship were now out of sight of land?
Why did the old Persians hold the sea holy? Why did the Greeks give it a
separate deity, and own brother of Jove? Surely all this is not without
meaning. And still deeper the meaning of that story of Narcissus, who because
he could not grasp the tormenting, mild image he saw in the fountain, plunged
into it and was drowned. But that same image, we ourselves see in all rivers
and oceans. It is the image of the ungraspable phantom of life; and this is the
key to it all.
Now,
when I say that I am in the habit of going to sea whenever I begin to grow hazy
about the eyes, and begin to be over conscious of my lungs, I do not mean to
have it inferred that I ever go to sea as a passenger. For to go as a passenger
you must needs have a purse, and a purse is but a rag unless you have something
in it. Besides, passengers get sea-sick—grow quarrelsome—don't sleep of
nights—do not enjoy themselves much, as a general thing;—no, I never go as a
passenger; nor, though I am something of a salt, do I ever go to sea as a Commodore,
or a Captain, or a Cook. I abandon the glory and distinction of such offices to
those who like them. For my part, I abominate all honorable respectable toils,
trials, and tribulations of every kind whatsoever. It is quite as much as I can
do to take care of myself, without taking care of ships, barques, brigs,
schooners, and what not. And as for going as cook,—though I confess there is
considerable glory in that, a cook being a sort of officer on ship-board—yet,
somehow, I never fancied broiling fowls;—though once broiled, judiciously
buttered, and judgmatically salted and peppered, there is no one who will speak
more respectfully, not to say reverentially, of a broiled fowl than I will. It
is out of the idolatrous dotings of the old Egyptians upon broiled ibis and
roasted river horse, that you see the mummies of those creatures in their huge
bake-houses the pyramids.
No,
when I go to sea, I go as a simple sailor, right before the mast, plumb down
into the forecastle, aloft there to the royal mast-head. True, they rather
order me about some, and make me jump from spar to spar, like a grasshopper in
a May meadow. And at first, this sort of thing is unpleasant enough. It touches
one's sense of honor, particularly if you come of an old established family in
the land, the Van Rensselaers, or Randolphs, or Hardicanutes. And more than
all, if just previous to putting your hand into the tar-pot, you have been
lording it as a country schoolmaster, making the tallest boys stand in awe of
you. The transition is a keen one, I assure you, from a schoolmaster to a
sailor, and requires a strong decoction of Seneca and the Stoics to enable you
to grin and bear it. But even this wears off in time.
What
of it, if some old hunks of a sea-captain orders me to get a broom and sweep
down the decks? What does that indignity amount to, weighed, I mean, in the
scales of the New Testament? Do you think the archangel Gabriel thinks anything
the less of me, because I promptly and respectfully obey that old hunks in that
particular instance? Who ain't a slave? Tell me that. Well, then, however the
old sea-captains may order me about—however they may thump and punch me about,
I have the satisfaction of knowing that it is all right; that everybody else is
one way or other served in much the same way—either in a physical or
metaphysical point of view, that is; and so the universal thump is passed
round, and all hands should rub each other's shoulder-blades, and be content.
Again,
I always go to sea as a sailor, because they make a point of paying me for my
trouble, whereas they never pay passengers a single penny that I ever heard of.
On the contrary, passengers themselves must pay. And there is all the
difference in the world between paying and being paid. The act of paying is perhaps
the most uncomfortable infliction that the two orchard thieves entailed upon
us. But being paid,—what will compare with it? The urbane activity with which a
man receives money is really marvellous, considering that we so earnestly
believe money to be the root of all earthly ills, and that on no account can a
monied man enter heaven. Ah! how cheerfully we consign ourselves to perdition!
Finally,
I always go to sea as a sailor, because of the wholesome exercise and pure air
of the fore-castle deck. For as in this world, head winds are far more
prevalent than winds from astern (that is, if you never violate the Pythagorean
maxim), so for the most part the Commodore on the quarter-deck gets his
atmosphere at second hand from the sailors on the forecastle. He thinks he
breathes it first; but not so. In much the same way do the commonalty lead
their leaders in many other things, at the same time that the leaders little
suspect it. But wherefore it was that after having repeatedly smelt the sea as
a merchant sailor, I should now take it into my head to go on a whaling voyage;
this the invisible police officer of the Fates, who has the constant
surveillance of me, and secretly dogs me, and influences me in some
unaccountable way—he can better answer than any one else. And, doubtless, my
going on this whaling voyage, formed part of the grand programme of Providence
that was drawn up a long time ago. It came in as a sort of brief interlude and
solo between more extensive performances. I take it that this part of the bill
must have run something like this:
“Grand
Contested Election for the Presidency of the United States. “WHALING VOYAGE BY
ONE ISHMAEL. “BLOODY BATTLE IN AFFGHANISTAN.”
Though
I cannot tell why it was exactly that those stage managers, the Fates, put me
down for this shabby part of a whaling voyage, when others were set down for
magnificent parts in high tragedies, and short and easy parts in genteel
comedies, and jolly parts in farces—though I cannot tell why this was exactly;
yet, now that I recall all the circumstances, I think I can see a little into
the springs and motives which being cunningly presented to me under various
disguises, induced me to set about performing the part I did, besides cajoling
me into the delusion that it was a choice resulting from my own unbiased
freewill and discriminating judgment.
Chief
among these motives was the overwhelming idea of the great whale himself. Such
a portentous and mysterious monster roused all my curiosity. Then the wild and
distant seas where he rolled his island bulk; the undeliverable, nameless
perils of the whale; these, with all the attending marvels of a thousand
Patagonian sights and sounds, helped to sway me to my wish. With other men,
perhaps, such things would not have been inducements; but as for me, I am
tormented with an everlasting itch for things remote. I love to sail forbidden
seas, and land on barbarous coasts. Not ignoring what is good, I am quick to perceive
a horror, and could still be social with it—would they let me—since it is but
well to be on friendly terms with all the inmates of the place one lodges in.
By
reason of these things, then, the whaling voyage was welcome; the great
flood-gates of the wonder-world swung open, and in the wild conceits that
swayed me to my purpose, two and two there floated into my inmost soul, endless
processions of the whale, and, mid most of them all, one grand hooded phantom,
like a snow hill in the air.
CHAPTER
2. The Carpet-Bag.
I
stuffed a shirt or two into my old carpet-bag, tucked it under my arm, and
started for Cape Horn and the Pacific. Quitting the good city of old Manhatto,
I duly arrived in New Bedford. It was a Saturday night in December. Much was I
disappointed upon learning that the little packet for Nantucket had already
sailed, and that no way of reaching that place would offer, till the following
Monday.
As
most young candidates for the pains and penalties of whaling stop at this same
New Bedford, thence to embark on their voyage, it may as well be related that
I, for one, had no idea of so doing. For my mind was made up to sail in no
other than a Nantucket craft, because there was a fine, boisterous something
about everything connected with that famous old island, which amazingly pleased
me. Besides though New Bedford has of late been gradually monopolising the
business of whaling, and though in this matter poor old Nantucket is now much
behind her, yet Nantucket was her great original—the Tyre of this Carthage;—the
place where the first dead American whale was stranded. Where else but from
Nantucket did those aboriginal whalemen, the Red-Men, first sally out in canoes
to give chase to the Leviathan? And where but from Nantucket, too, did that
first adventurous little sloop put forth, partly laden with imported
cobblestones—so goes the story—to throw at the whales, in order to discover
when they were nigh enough to risk a harpoon from the bowsprit?
Now
having a night, a day, and still another night following before me in New
Bedford, ere I could embark for my destined port, it became a matter of
concernment where I was to eat and sleep meanwhile. It was a very
dubious-looking, nay, a very dark and dismal night, bitingly cold and cheerless.
I knew no one in the place. With anxious grapnels I had sounded my pocket, and
only brought up a few pieces of silver,—So, wherever you go, Ishmael, said I to
myself, as I stood in the middle of a dreary street shouldering my bag, and
comparing the gloom towards the north with the darkness towards the
south—wherever in your wisdom you may conclude to lodge for the night, my dear
Ishmael, be sure to inquire the price, and don't be too particular.
With
halting steps I paced the streets, and passed the sign of “The Crossed
Harpoons”—but it looked too expensive and jolly there. Further on, from the
bright red windows of the “Sword-Fish Inn,” there came such fervent rays, that
it seemed to have melted the packed snow and ice from before the house, for
everywhere else the congealed frost lay ten inches thick in a hard, asphaltic
pavement,—rather weary for me, when I struck my foot against the flinty
projections, because from hard, remorseless service the soles of my boots were
in a most miserable plight. Too expensive and jolly, again thought I, pausing
one moment to watch the broad glare in the street, and hear the sounds of the
tinkling glasses within. But go on, Ishmael, said I at last; don't you hear?
get away from before the door; your patched boots are stopping the way. So on I
went. I now by instinct followed the streets that took me waterward, for there,
doubtless, were the cheapest, if not the cheeriest inns.
Such
dreary streets! blocks of blackness, not houses, on either hand, and here and
there a candle, like a candle moving about in a tomb. At this hour of the
night, of the last day of the week, that quarter of the town proved all but
deserted. But presently I came to a smoky light proceeding from a low, wide
building, the door of which stood invitingly open. It had a careless look, as
if it were meant for the uses of the public; so, entering, the first thing I
did was to stumble over an ash-box in the porch. Ha! thought I, ha, as the
flying particles almost choked me, are these ashes from that destroyed city,
Gomorrah? But “The Crossed Harpoons,” and “The Sword-Fish?”—this, then must
needs be the sign of “The Trap.” However, I picked myself up and hearing a loud
voice within, pushed on and opened a second, interior door.
It
seemed the great Black Parliament sitting in Tophet. A hundred black faces
turned round in their rows to peer; and beyond, a black Angel of Doom was
beating a book in a pulpit. It was a negro church; and the preacher's text was
about the blackness of darkness, and the weeping and wailing and teeth-gnashing
there. Ha, Ishmael, muttered I, backing out, Wretched entertainment at the sign
of 'The Trap!'
Moving
on, I at last came to a dim sort of light not far from the docks, and heard a
forlorn creaking in the air; and looking up, saw a swinging sign over the door
with a white painting upon it, faintly representing a tall straight jet of
misty spray, and these words underneath—“The Spouter Inn:—Peter Coffin.”
Coffin?—Spouter?—Rather
ominous in that particular connexion, thought I. But it is a common name in
Nantucket, they say, and I suppose this Peter here is an emigrant from there.
As the light looked so dim, and the place, for the time, looked quiet enough,
and the dilapidated little wooden house itself looked as if it might have been
carted here from the ruins of some burnt district, and as the swinging sign had
a poverty-stricken sort of creak to it, I thought that here was the very spot
for cheap lodgings, and the best of pea coffee.
It
was a queer sort of place—a gable-ended old house, one side palsied as it were,
and leaning over sadly. It stood on a sharp bleak corner, where that
tempestuous wind Euroclydon kept up a worse howling than ever it did about poor
Paul's tossed craft. Euroclydon, nevertheless, is a mighty pleasant zephyr to
any one in-doors, with his feet on the hob quietly toasting for bed. “In
judging of that tempestuous wind called Euroclydon,” says an old writer—of
whose works I possess the only copy extant—“it maketh a marvellous difference,
whether thou lookest out at it from a glass window where the frost is all on
the outside, or whether thou observest it from that sashless window, where the
frost is on both sides, and of which the wight Death is the only glazier.” True
enough, thought I, as this passage occurred to my mind—old black-letter, thou
reasonest well. Yes, these eyes are windows, and this body of mine is the
house. What a pity they didn't stop up the chinks and the crannies though, and
thrust in a little lint here and there. But it's too late to make any
improvements now. The universe is finished; the copestone is on, and the chips
were carted off a million years ago. Poor Lazarus there, chattering his teeth
against the curbstone for his pillow, and shaking off his tatters with his
shiverings, he might plug up both ears with rags, and put a corn-cob into his
mouth, and yet that would not keep out the tempestuous Euroclydon. Euroclydon!
says old Dives, in his red silken wrapper—(he had a redder one afterwards)
pooh, pooh! What a fine frosty night; how Orion glitters; what northern lights!
Let them talk of their oriental summer climes of everlasting conservatories;
give me the privilege of making my own summer with my own coals.
But
what thinks Lazarus? Can he warm his blue hands by holding them up to the grand
northern lights? Would not Lazarus rather be in Sumatra than here? Would he not
far rather lay him down lengthwise along the line of the equator; yea, ye gods!
go down to the fiery pit itself, in order to keep out this frost?
Now,
that Lazarus should lie stranded there on the curbstone before the door of
Dives, this is more wonderful than that an iceberg should be moored to one of
the Moluccas. Yet Dives himself, he too lives like a Czar in an ice palace made
of frozen sighs, and being a president of a temperance society, he only drinks
the tepid tears of orphans.
But
no more of this blubbering now, we are going a-whaling, and there is plenty of
that yet to come. Let us scrape the ice from our frosted feet, and see what
sort of a place this “Spouter” may be.
CHAPTER
3. The Spouter-Inn.
Entering
that gable-ended Spouter-Inn, you found yourself in a wide, low, straggling
entry with old-fashioned wainscots, reminding one of the bulwarks of some
condemned old craft. On one side hung a very large oil-painting so thoroughly
besmoked, and every way defaced, that in the unequal cross-lights by which you
viewed it, it was only by diligent study and a series of systematic visits to
it, and careful inquiry of the neighbors, that you could any way arrive at an
understanding of its purpose. Such unaccountable masses of shades and shadows,
that at first you almost thought some ambitious young artist, in the time of
the New England hags, had endeavored to delineate chaos bewitched. But by dint
of much and earnest contemplation, and oft repeated ponderings, and especially
by throwing open the little window towards the back of the entry, you at last
come to the conclusion that such an idea, however wild, might not be altogether
unwarranted.
But
what most puzzled and confounded you was a long, limber, portentous, black mass
of something hovering in the centre of the picture over three blue, dim,
perpendicular lines floating in a nameless yeast. A boggy, soggy, squitchy
picture truly, enough to drive a nervous man distracted. Yet was there a sort
of indefinite, half-attained, unimaginable sublimity about it that fairly froze
you to it, till you involuntarily took an oath with yourself to find out what
that marvellous painting meant. Ever and anon a bright, but, alas, deceptive
idea would dart you through.—It's the Black Sea in a midnight gale.—It's the
unnatural combat of the four primal elements.—It's a blasted heath.—It's a
Hyperborean winter scene.—It's the breaking-up of the icebound stream of Time.
But at last all these fancies yielded to that one portentous something in the
picture's midst. That once found out, and all the rest were plain. But stop;
does it not bear a faint resemblance to a gigantic fish? even the great
leviathan himself?
In
fact, the artist's design seemed this: a final theory of my own, partly based
upon the aggregated opinions of many aged persons with whom I conversed upon
the subject. The picture represents a Cape-Horner in a great hurricane; the
half-foundered ship weltering there with its three dismantled masts alone
visible; and an exasperated whale, purposing to spring clean over the craft, is
in the enormous act of impaling himself upon the three mast-heads.
The
opposite wall of this entry was hung all over with a heathenish array of
monstrous clubs and spears. Some were thickly set with glittering teeth
resembling ivory saws; others were tufted with knots of human hair; and one was
sickle-shaped, with a vast handle sweeping round like the segment made in the
new-mown grass by a long-armed mower. You shuddered as you gazed, and wondered
what monstrous cannibal and savage could ever have gone a death-harvesting with
such a hacking, horrifying implement. Mixed with these were rusty old whaling
lances and harpoons all broken and deformed. Some were storied weapons. With
this once long lance, now wildly elbowed, fifty years ago did Nathan Swain kill
fifteen whales between a sunrise and a sunset. And that harpoon—so like a
corkscrew now—was flung in Javan seas, and run away with by a whale, years
afterwards slain off the Cape of Blanco. The original iron entered nigh the
tail, and, like a restless needle sojourning in the body of a man, travelled
full forty feet, and at last was found imbedded in the hump.
Crossing
this dusky entry, and on through yon low-arched way—cut through what in old
times must have been a great central chimney with fireplaces all round—you
enter the public room. A still duskier place is this, with such low ponderous
beams above, and such old wrinkled planks beneath, that you would almost fancy
you trod some old craft's cockpits, especially of such a howling night, when
this corner-anchored old ark rocked so furiously. On one side stood a long,
low, shelf-like table covered with cracked glass cases, filled with dusty
rarities gathered from this wide world's remotest nooks. Projecting from the
further angle of the room stands a dark-looking den—the bar—a rude attempt at a
right whale's head. Be that how it may, there stands the vast arched bone of
the whale's jaw, so wide, a coach might almost drive beneath it. Within are
shabby shelves, ranged round with old decanters, bottles, flasks; and in those
jaws of swift destruction, like another cursed Jonah (by which name indeed they
called him), bustles a little withered old man, who, for their money, dearly
sells the sailors deliriums and death.
Abominable
are the tumblers into which he pours his poison. Though true cylinders
without—within, the villanous green goggling glasses deceitfully tapered
downwards to a cheating bottom. Parallel meridians rudely pecked into the
glass, surround these footpads' goblets. Fill to this mark, and your charge is
but a penny; to this a penny more; and so on to the full glass—the Cape Horn
measure, which you may gulp down for a shilling.
Upon
entering the place I found a number of young seamen gathered about a table,
examining by a dim light divers specimens of skrimshander. I sought the
landlord, and telling him I desired to be accommodated with a room, received
for answer that his house was full—not a bed unoccupied. “But avast,” he added,
tapping his forehead, “you haint no objections to sharing a harpooneer's
blanket, have ye? I s'pose you are goin' a-whalin', so you'd better get used to
that sort of thing.”
I
told him that I never liked to sleep two in a bed; that if I should ever do so,
it would depend upon who the harpooneer might be, and that if he (the landlord)
really had no other place for me, and the harpooneer was not decidedly
objectionable, why rather than wander further about a strange town on so bitter
a night, I would put up with the half of any decent man's blanket.
“I
thought so. All right; take a seat. Supper?—you want supper? Supper'll be ready
directly.”
I
sat down on an old wooden settle, carved all over like a bench on the Battery.
At one end a ruminating tar was still further adorning it with his jack-knife,
stooping over and diligently working away at the space between his legs. He was
trying his hand at a ship under full sail, but he didn't make much headway, I
thought.
At
last some four or five of us were summoned to our meal in an adjoining room. It
was cold as Iceland—no fire at all—the landlord said he couldn't afford it.
Nothing but two dismal tallow candles, each in a winding sheet. We were fain to
button up our monkey jackets, and hold to our lips cups of scalding tea with
our half frozen fingers. But the fare was of the most substantial kind—not only
meat and potatoes, but dumplings; good heavens! dumplings for supper! One young
fellow in a green box coat, addressed himself to these dumplings in a most
direful manner.
“My
boy,” said the landlord, “you'll have the nightmare to a dead sartainty.”
“Landlord,”
I whispered, “that aint the harpooneer is it?”
“Oh,
no,” said he, looking a sort of diabolically funny, “the harpooneer is a dark
complexioned chap. He never eats dumplings, he don't—he eats nothing but
steaks, and he likes 'em rare.”
“The
devil he does,” says I. “Where is that harpooneer? Is he here?”
“He'll
be here afore long,” was the answer.
I
could not help it, but I began to feel suspicious of this “dark complexioned”
harpooneer. At any rate, I made up my mind that if it so turned out that we
should sleep together, he must undress and get into bed before I did.
Supper
over, the company went back to the bar-room, when, knowing not what else to do
with myself, I resolved to spend the rest of the evening as a looker on.
Presently
a rioting noise was heard without. Starting up, the landlord cried, “That's the
Grampus's crew. I seed her reported in the offing this morning; a three years'
voyage, and a full ship. Hurrah, boys; now we'll have the latest news from the
Feegees.”
A
tramping of sea boots was heard in the entry; the door was flung open, and in
rolled a wild set of mariners enough. Enveloped in their shaggy watch coats,
and with their heads muffled in woollen comforters, all bedarned and ragged,
and their beards stiff with icicles, they seemed an eruption of bears from
Labrador. They had just landed from their boat, and this was the first house
they entered. No wonder, then, that they made a straight wake for the whale's
mouth—the bar—when the wrinkled little old Jonah, there officiating, soon
poured them out brimmers all round. One complained of a bad cold in his head,
upon which Jonah mixed him a pitch-like potion of gin and molasses, which he
swore was a sovereign cure for all colds and catarrhs whatsoever, never mind of
how long standing, or whether caught off the coast of Labrador, or on the
weather side of an ice-island.
The
liquor soon mounted into their heads, as it generally does even with the
arrantest topers newly landed from sea, and they began capering about most
obstreperously.
I
observed, however, that one of them held somewhat aloof, and though he seemed
desirous not to spoil the hilarity of his shipmates by his own sober face, yet
upon the whole he refrained from making as much noise as the rest. This man
interested me at once; and since the sea-gods had ordained that he should soon
become my shipmate (though but a sleeping-partner one, so far as this narrative
is concerned), I will here venture upon a little description of him. He stood
full six feet in height, with noble shoulders, and a chest like a coffer-dam. I
have seldom seen such brawn in a man. His face was deeply brown and burnt,
making his white teeth dazzling by the contrast; while in the deep shadows of
his eyes floated some reminiscences that did not seem to give him much joy. His
voice at once announced that he was a Southerner, and from his fine stature, I
thought he must be one of those tall mountaineers from the Alleghanian Ridge in
Virginia. When the revelry of his companions had mounted to its height, this man
slipped away unobserved, and I saw no more of him till he became my comrade on
the sea. In a few minutes, however, he was missed by his shipmates, and being,
it seems, for some reason a huge favourite with them, they raised a cry of
“Bulkington! Bulkington! where's Bulkington?” and darted out of the house in
pursuit of him.
It
was now about nine o'clock, and the room seeming almost supernaturally quiet
after these orgies, I began to congratulate myself upon a little plan that had
occurred to me just previous to the entrance of the seamen.
No
man prefers to sleep two in a bed. In fact, you would a good deal rather not
sleep with your own brother. I don't know how it is, but people like to be
private when they are sleeping. And when it comes to sleeping with an unknown
stranger, in a strange inn, in a strange town, and that stranger a harpooneer,
then your objections indefinitely multiply. Nor was there any earthly reason
why I as a sailor should sleep two in a bed, more than anybody else; for
sailors no more sleep two in a bed at sea, than bachelor Kings do ashore. To be
sure they all sleep together in one apartment, but you have your own hammock,
and cover yourself with your own blanket, and sleep in your own skin.
The
more I pondered over this harpooneer, the more I abominated the thought of
sleeping with him. It was fair to presume that being a harpooneer, his linen or
woollen, as the case might be, would not be of the tidiest, certainly none of
the finest. I began to twitch all over. Besides, it was getting late, and my
decent harpooneer ought to be home and going bedwards. Suppose now, he should
tumble in upon me at midnight—how could I tell from what vile hole he had been
coming?
“Landlord!
I've changed my mind about that harpooneer.—I shan't sleep with him. I'll try
the bench here.”
“Just
as you please; I'm sorry I can't spare ye a tablecloth for a mattress, and it's
a plaguy rough board here”—feeling of the knots and notches. “But wait a bit,
Skrimshander; I've got a carpenter's plane there in the bar—wait, I say, and
I'll make ye snug enough.” So saying he procured the plane; and with his old
silk handkerchief first dusting the bench, vigorously set to planing away at my
bed, the while grinning like an ape. The shavings flew right and left; till at
last the plane-iron came bump against an indestructible knot. The landlord was
near spraining his wrist, and I told him for heaven's sake to quit—the bed was
soft enough to suit me, and I did not know how all the planing in the world
could make eider down of a pine plank. So gathering up the shavings with
another grin, and throwing them into the great stove in the middle of the room,
he went about his business, and left me in a brown study.
I
now took the measure of the bench, and found that it was a foot too short; but
that could be mended with a chair. But it was a foot too narrow, and the other
bench in the room was about four inches higher than the planed one—so there was
no yoking them. I then placed the first bench lengthwise along the only clear
space against the wall, leaving a little interval between, for my back to
settle down in. But I soon found that there came such a draught of cold air
over me from under the sill of the window, that this plan would never do at
all, especially as another current from the rickety door met the one from the
window, and both together formed a series of small whirlwinds in the immediate
vicinity of the spot where I had thought to spend the night.
The
devil fetch that harpooneer, thought I, but stop, couldn't I steal a march on
him—bolt his door inside, and jump into his bed, not to be wakened by the most
violent knockings? It seemed no bad idea; but upon second thoughts I dismissed
it. For who could tell but what the next morning, so soon as I popped out of the
room, the harpooneer might be standing in the entry, all ready to knock me
down!
Still,
looking round me again, and seeing no possible chance of spending a sufferable
night unless in some other person's bed, I began to think that after all I
might be cherishing unwarrantable prejudices against this unknown harpooneer.
Thinks I, I'll wait awhile; he must be dropping in before long. I'll have a
good look at him then, and perhaps we may become jolly good bedfellows after
all—there's no telling.
But
though the other boarders kept coming in by ones, twos, and threes, and going
to bed, yet no sign of my harpooneer.
“Landlord!”
said I, “what sort of a chap is he—does he always keep such late hours?” It was
now hard upon twelve o'clock.
The
landlord chuckled again with his lean chuckle, and seemed to be mightily
tickled at something beyond my comprehension. “No,” he answered, “generally
he's an early bird—airley to bed and airley to rise—yes, he's the bird what
catches the worm. But to-night he went out a peddling, you see, and I don't see
what on airth keeps him so late, unless, may be, he can't sell his head.”
“Can't
sell his head?—What sort of a bamboozingly story is this you are telling me?”
getting into a towering rage. “Do you pretend to say, landlord, that this
harpooneer is actually engaged this blessed Saturday night, or rather Sunday
morning, in peddling his head around this town?”
“That's
precisely it,” said the landlord, “and I told him he couldn't sell it here, the
market's overstocked.”
“With
what?” shouted I.
“With
heads to be sure; ain't there too many heads in the world?”
“I
tell you what it is, landlord,” said I quite calmly, “you'd better stop
spinning that yarn to me—I'm not green.”
“May
be not,” taking out a stick and whittling a toothpick, “but I rayther guess
you'll be done brown if that ere harpooneer hears you a slanderin' his head.”
“I'll
break it for him,” said I, now flying into a passion again at this
unaccountable farrago of the landlord's.
“It's
broke a'ready,” said he.
“Broke,”
said I—“broke, do you mean?”
“Sartain,
and that's the very reason he can't sell it, I guess.”
“Landlord,”
said I, going up to him as cool as Mt. Hecla in a snow-storm—“landlord, stop
whittling. You and I must understand one another, and that too without delay. I
come to your house and want a bed; you tell me you can only give me half a one;
that the other half belongs to a certain harpooneer. And about this harpooneer,
whom I have not yet seen, you persist in telling me the most mystifying and
exasperating stories tending to beget in me an uncomfortable feeling towards
the man whom you design for my bedfellow—a sort of connexion, landlord, which
is an intimate and confidential one in the highest degree. I now demand of you
to speak out and tell me who and what this harpooneer is, and whether I shall
be in all respects safe to spend the night with him. And in the first place,
you will be so good as to unsay that story about selling his head, which if
true I take to be good evidence that this harpooneer is stark mad, and I've no
idea of sleeping with a madman; and you, sir, you I mean, landlord, you, sir,
by trying to induce me to do so knowingly, would thereby render yourself liable
to a criminal prosecution.”
“Wall,”
said the landlord, fetching a long breath, “that's a purty long sarmon for a
chap that rips a little now and then. But be easy, be easy, this here
harpooneer I have been tellin' you of has just arrived from the south seas,
where he bought up a lot of 'balmed New Zealand heads (great curios, you know),
and he's sold all on 'em but one, and that one he's trying to sell to-night,
cause to-morrow's Sunday, and it would not do to be sellin' human heads about
the streets when folks is goin' to churches. He wanted to, last Sunday, but I
stopped him just as he was goin' out of the door with four heads strung on a
string, for all the airth like a string of inions.”
This
account cleared up the otherwise unaccountable mystery, and showed that the
landlord, after all, had had no idea of fooling me—but at the same time what
could I think of a harpooneer who stayed out of a Saturday night clean into the
holy Sabbath, engaged in such a cannibal business as selling the heads of dead
idolators?
“Depend
upon it, landlord, that harpooneer is a dangerous man.”
“He
pays reg'lar,” was the rejoinder. “But come, it's getting dreadful late, you
had better be turning flukes—it's a nice bed; Sal and me slept in that ere bed
the night we were spliced. There's plenty of room for two to kick about in that
bed; it's an almighty big bed that. Why, afore we give it up, Sal used to put
our Sam and little Johnny in the foot of it. But I got a dreaming and sprawling
about one night, and somehow, Sam got pitched on the floor, and came near
breaking his arm. Arter that, Sal said it wouldn't do. Come along here, I'll
give ye a glim in a jiffy;” and so saying he lighted a candle and held it
towards me, offering to lead the way. But I stood irresolute; when looking at a
clock in the corner, he exclaimed “I vum it's Sunday—you won't see that
harpooneer to-night; he's come to anchor somewhere—come along then; do come;
won't ye come?”
I
considered the matter a moment, and then up stairs we went, and I was ushered
into a small room, cold as a clam, and furnished, sure enough, with a
prodigious bed, almost big enough indeed for any four harpooneers to sleep
abreast.
“There,”
said the landlord, placing the candle on a crazy old sea chest that did double
duty as a wash-stand and centre table; “there, make yourself comfortable now,
and good night to ye.” I turned round from eyeing the bed, but he had
disappeared.
Folding
back the counterpane, I stooped over the bed. Though none of the most elegant,
it yet stood the scrutiny tolerably well. I then glanced round the room; and
besides the bedstead and centre table, could see no other furniture belonging
to the place, but a rude shelf, the four walls, and a papered fireboard
representing a man striking a whale. Of things not properly belonging to the
room, there was a hammock lashed up, and thrown upon the floor in one corner;
also a large seaman's bag, containing the harpooneer's wardrobe, no doubt in
lieu of a land trunk. Likewise, there was a parcel of outlandish bone fish
hooks on the shelf over the fire-place, and a tall harpoon standing at the head
of the bed.
But
what is this on the chest? I took it up, and held it close to the light, and
felt it, and smelt it, and tried every way possible to arrive at some
satisfactory conclusion concerning it. I can compare it to nothing but a large
door mat, ornamented at the edges with little tinkling tags something like the
stained porcupine quills round an Indian moccasin. There was a hole or slit in
the middle of this mat, as you see the same in South American ponchos. But
could it be possible that any sober harpooneer would get into a door mat, and
parade the streets of any Christian town in that sort of guise? I put it on, to
try it, and it weighed me down like a hamper, being uncommonly shaggy and
thick, and I thought a little damp, as though this mysterious harpooneer had
been wearing it of a rainy day. I went up in it to a bit of glass stuck against
the wall, and I never saw such a sight in my life. I tore myself out of it in
such a hurry that I gave myself a kink in the neck.
I
sat down on the side of the bed, and commenced thinking about this
head-peddling harpooneer, and his door mat. After thinking some time on the
bed-side, I got up and took off my monkey jacket, and then stood in the middle
of the room thinking. I then took off my coat, and thought a little more in my
shirt sleeves. But beginning to feel very cold now, half undressed as I was,
and remembering what the landlord said about the harpooneer's not coming home
at all that night, it being so very late, I made no more ado, but jumped out of
my pantaloons and boots, and then blowing out the light tumbled into bed, and
commended myself to the care of heaven.
Whether
that mattress was stuffed with corn-cobs or broken crockery, there is no
telling, but I rolled about a good deal, and could not sleep for a long time.
At last I slid off into a light doze, and had pretty nearly made a good offing
towards the land of Nod, when I heard a heavy footfall in the passage, and saw
a glimmer of light come into the room from under the door.
Lord
save me, thinks I, that must be the harpooneer, the infernal head-peddler. But
I lay perfectly still, and resolved not to say a word till spoken to. Holding a
light in one hand, and that identical New Zealand head in the other, the
stranger entered the room, and without looking towards the bed, placed his
candle a good way off from me on the floor in one corner, and then began
working away at the knotted cords of the large bag I before spoke of as being
in the room. I was all eagerness to see his face, but he kept it averted for
some time while employed in unlacing the bag's mouth. This accomplished,
however, he turned round—when, good heavens! what a sight! Such a face! It was
of a dark, purplish, yellow colour, here and there stuck over with large
blackish looking squares. Yes, it's just as I thought, he's a terrible
bedfellow; he's been in a fight, got dreadfully cut, and here he is, just from
the surgeon. But at that moment he chanced to turn his face so towards the
light, that I plainly saw they could not be sticking-plasters at all, those
black squares on his cheeks. They were stains of some sort or other. At first I
knew not what to make of this; but soon an inkling of the truth occurred to me.
I remembered a story of a white man—a whaleman too—who, falling among the
cannibals, had been tattooed by them. I concluded that this harpooneer, in the
course of his distant voyages, must have met with a similar adventure. And what
is it, thought I, after all! It's only his outside; a man can be honest in any
sort of skin. But then, what to make of his unearthly complexion, that part of
it, I mean, lying round about, and completely independent of the squares of
tattooing. To be sure, it might be nothing but a good coat of tropical tanning;
but I never heard of a hot sun's tanning a white man into a purplish yellow
one. However, I had never been in the South Seas; and perhaps the sun there
produced these extraordinary effects upon the skin. Now, while all these ideas
were passing through me like lightning, this harpooneer never noticed me at
all. But, after some difficulty having opened his bag, he commenced fumbling in
it, and presently pulled out a sort of tomahawk, and a seal-skin wallet with
the hair on. Placing these on the old chest in the middle of the room, he then
took the New Zealand head—a ghastly thing enough—and crammed it down into the
bag. He now took off his hat—a new beaver hat—when I came nigh singing out with
fresh surprise. There was no hair on his head—none to speak of at least—nothing
but a small scalp-knot twisted up on his forehead. His bald purplish head now
looked for all the world like a mildewed skull. Had not the stranger stood
between me and the door, I would have bolted out of it quicker than ever I
bolted a dinner.
Even
as it was, I thought something of slipping out of the window, but it was the
second floor back. I am no coward, but what to make of this head-peddling
purple rascal altogether passed my comprehension. Ignorance is the parent of
fear, and being completely nonplussed and confounded about the stranger, I
confess I was now as much afraid of him as if it was the devil himself who had
thus broken into my room at the dead of night. In fact, I was so afraid of him
that I was not game enough just then to address him, and demand a satisfactory
answer concerning what seemed inexplicable in him.
Meanwhile,
he continued the business of undressing, and at last showed his chest and arms.
As I live, these covered parts of him were checkered with the same squares as
his face; his back, too, was all over the same dark squares; he seemed to have
been in a Thirty Years' War, and just escaped from it with a sticking-plaster
shirt. Still more, his very legs were marked, as if a parcel of dark green
frogs were running up the trunks of young palms. It was now quite plain that he
must be some abominable savage or other shipped aboard of a whaleman in the
South Seas, and so landed in this Christian country. I quaked to think of it. A
peddler of heads too—perhaps the heads of his own brothers. He might take a
fancy to mine—heavens! look at that tomahawk!
But
there was no time for shuddering, for now the savage went about something that
completely fascinated my attention, and convinced me that he must indeed be a
heathen. Going to his heavy grego, or wrapall, or dreadnaught, which he had
previously hung on a chair, he fumbled in the pockets, and produced at length a
curious little deformed image with a hunch on its back, and exactly the colour
of a three days' old Congo baby. Remembering the embalmed head, at first I
almost thought that this black manikin was a real baby preserved in some
similar manner. But seeing that it was not at all limber, and that it glistened
a good deal like polished ebony, I concluded that it must be nothing but a
wooden idol, which indeed it proved to be. For now the savage goes up to the
empty fire-place, and removing the papered fire-board, sets up this little
hunch-backed image, like a tenpin, between the andirons. The chimney jambs and
all the bricks inside were very sooty, so that I thought this fire-place made a
very appropriate little shrine or chapel for his Congo idol.
I
now screwed my eyes hard towards the half hidden image, feeling but ill at ease
meantime—to see what was next to follow. First he takes about a double handful
of shavings out of his grego pocket, and places them carefully before the idol;
then laying a bit of ship biscuit on top and applying the flame from the lamp,
he kindled the shavings into a sacrificial blaze. Presently, after many hasty
snatches into the fire, and still hastier withdrawals of his fingers (whereby
he seemed to be scorching them badly), he at last succeeded in drawing out the
biscuit; then blowing off the heat and ashes a little, he made a polite offer
of it to the little negro. But the little devil did not seem to fancy such dry
sort of fare at all; he never moved his lips. All these strange antics were
accompanied by still stranger guttural noises from the devotee, who seemed to
be praying in a sing-song or else singing some pagan psalmody or other, during
which his face twitched about in the most unnatural manner. At last
extinguishing the fire, he took the idol up very unceremoniously, and bagged it
again in his grego pocket as carelessly as if he were a sportsman bagging a
dead woodcock.
All
these queer proceedings increased my uncomfortableness, and seeing him now
exhibiting strong symptoms of concluding his business operations, and jumping
into bed with me, I thought it was high time, now or never, before the light
was put out, to break the spell in which I had so long been bound.
But
the interval I spent in deliberating what to say, was a fatal one. Taking up
his tomahawk from the table, he examined the head of it for an instant, and
then holding it to the light, with his mouth at the handle, he puffed out great
clouds of tobacco smoke. The next moment the light was extinguished, and this
wild cannibal, tomahawk between his teeth, sprang into bed with me. I sang out,
I could not help it now; and giving a sudden grunt of astonishment he began
feeling me.
Stammering
out something, I knew not what, I rolled away from him against the wall, and
then conjured him, whoever or whatever he might be, to keep quiet, and let me
get up and light the lamp again. But his guttural responses satisfied me at
once that he but ill comprehended my meaning.
“Who-e
debel you?”—he at last said—“you no speak-e, dam-me, I kill-e.” And so saying
the lighted tomahawk began flourishing about me in the dark.
“Landlord,
for God's sake, Peter Coffin!” shouted I. “Landlord! Watch! Coffin! Angels!
save me!”
“Speak-e!
tell-ee me who-ee be, or dam-me, I kill-e!” again growled the cannibal, while
his horrid flourishings of the tomahawk scattered the hot tobacco ashes about
me till I thought my linen would get on fire. But thank heaven, at that moment
the landlord came into the room light in hand, and leaping from the bed I ran
up to him.
“Don't
be afraid now,” said he, grinning again, “Queequeg here wouldn't harm a hair of
your head.”
“Stop
your grinning,” shouted I, “and why didn't you tell me that that infernal
harpooneer was a cannibal?”
“I
thought ye know'd it;—didn't I tell ye, he was a peddlin' heads around
town?—but turn flukes again and go to sleep. Queequeg, look here—you sabbee me,
I sabbee—you this man sleepe you—you sabbee?”
“Me
sabbee plenty”—grunted Queequeg, puffing away at his pipe and sitting up in
bed.
“You
gettee in,” he added, motioning to me with his tomahawk, and throwing the
clothes to one side. He really did this in not only a civil but a really kind
and charitable way. I stood looking at him a moment. For all his tattooings he
was on the whole a clean, comely looking cannibal. What's all this fuss I have
been making about, thought I to myself—the man's a human being just as I am: he
has just as much reason to fear me, as I have to be afraid of him. Better sleep
with a sober cannibal than a drunken Christian.
“Landlord,”
said I, “tell him to stash his tomahawk there, or pipe, or whatever you call
it; tell him to stop smoking, in short, and I will turn in with him. But I
don't fancy having a man smoking in bed with me. It's dangerous. Besides, I
ain't insured.”
This
being told to Queequeg, he at once complied, and again politely motioned me to
get into bed—rolling over to one side as much as to say—“I won't touch a leg of
ye.”
“Good
night, landlord,” said I, “you may go.”
I
turned in, and never slept better in my life.
CHAPTER
4. The Counterpane.
Upon
waking next morning about daylight, I found Queequeg's arm thrown over me in
the most loving and affectionate manner. You had almost thought I had been his
wife. The counterpane was of patchwork, full of odd little parti-coloured
squares and triangles; and this arm of his tattooed all over with an
interminable Cretan labyrinth of a figure, no two parts of which were of one
precise shade—owing I suppose to his keeping his arm at sea unmethodically in
sun and shade, his shirt sleeves irregularly rolled up at various times—this
same arm of his, I say, looked for all the world like a strip of that same
patchwork quilt. Indeed, partly lying on it as the arm did when I first awoke,
I could hardly tell it from the quilt, they so blended their hues together; and
it was only by the sense of weight and pressure that I could tell that Queequeg
was hugging me.
My
sensations were strange. Let me try to explain them. When I was a child, I well
remember a somewhat similar circumstance that befell me; whether it was a
reality or a dream, I never could entirely settle. The circumstance was this. I
had been cutting up some caper or other—I think it was trying to crawl up the
chimney, as I had seen a little sweep do a few days previous; and my stepmother
who, somehow or other, was all the time whipping me, or sending me to bed
supperless,—my mother dragged me by the legs out of the chimney and packed me
off to bed, though it was only two o'clock in the afternoon of the 21st June,
the longest day in the year in our hemisphere. I felt dreadfully. But there was
no help for it, so up stairs I went to my little room in the third floor,
undressed myself as slowly as possible so as to kill time, and with a bitter
sigh got between the sheets.
I
lay there dismally calculating that sixteen entire hours must elapse before I
could hope for a resurrection. Sixteen hours in bed! the small of my back ached
to think of it. And it was so light too; the sun shining in at the window, and
a great rattling of coaches in the streets, and the sound of gay voices all
over the house. I felt worse and worse—at last I got up, dressed, and softly
going down in my stockinged feet, sought out my stepmother, and suddenly threw
myself at her feet, beseeching her as a particular favour to give me a good slippering
for my misbehaviour; anything indeed but condemning me to lie abed such an
unendurable length of time. But she was the best and most conscientious of
stepmothers, and back I had to go to my room. For several hours I lay there
broad awake, feeling a great deal worse than I have ever done since, even from
the greatest subsequent misfortunes. At last I must have fallen into a troubled
nightmare of a doze; and slowly waking from it—half steeped in dreams—I opened
my eyes, and the before sun-lit room was now wrapped in outer darkness.
Instantly I felt a shock running through all my frame; nothing was to be seen,
and nothing was to be heard; but a supernatural hand seemed placed in mine. My
arm hung over the counterpane, and the nameless, unimaginable, silent form or
phantom, to which the hand belonged, seemed closely seated by my bed-side. For
what seemed ages piled on ages, I lay there, frozen with the most awful fears,
not daring to drag away my hand; yet ever thinking that if I could but stir it
one single inch, the horrid spell would be broken. I knew not how this
consciousness at last glided away from me; but waking in the morning, I
shudderingly remembered it all, and for days and weeks and months afterwards I
lost myself in confounding attempts to explain the mystery. Nay, to this very
hour, I often puzzle myself with it.
Now,
take away the awful fear, and my sensations at feeling the supernatural hand in
mine were very similar, in their strangeness, to those which I experienced on
waking up and seeing Queequeg's pagan arm thrown round me. But at length all
the past night's events soberly recurred, one by one, in fixed reality, and
then I lay only alive to the comical predicament. For though I tried to move
his arm—unlock his bridegroom clasp—yet, sleeping as he was, he still hugged me
tightly, as though naught but death should part us twain. I now strove to rouse
him—“Queequeg!”—but his only answer was a snore. I then rolled over, my neck
feeling as if it were in a horse-collar; and suddenly felt a slight scratch.
Throwing aside the counterpane, there lay the tomahawk sleeping by the savage's
side, as if it were a hatchet-faced baby. A pretty pickle, truly, thought I;
abed here in a strange house in the broad day, with a cannibal and a tomahawk!
“Queequeg!—in the name of goodness, Queequeg, wake!” At length, by dint of much
wriggling, and loud and incessant expostulations upon the unbecomingness of his
hugging a fellow male in that matrimonial sort of style, I succeeded in
extracting a grunt; and presently, he drew back his arm, shook himself all over
like a Newfoundland dog just from the water, and sat up in bed, stiff as a
pike-staff, looking at me, and rubbing his eyes as if he did not altogether
remember how I came to be there, though a dim consciousness of knowing
something about me seemed slowly dawning over him. Meanwhile, I lay quietly
eyeing him, having no serious misgivings now, and bent upon narrowly observing
so curious a creature. When, at last, his mind seemed made up touching the
character of his bedfellow, and he became, as it were, reconciled to the fact;
he jumped out upon the floor, and by certain signs and sounds gave me to
understand that, if it pleased me, he would dress first and then leave me to
dress afterwards, leaving the whole apartment to myself. Thinks I, Queequeg,
under the circumstances, this is a very civilized overture; but, the truth is,
these savages have an innate sense of delicacy, say what you will; it is
marvellous how essentially polite they are. I pay this particular compliment to
Queequeg, because he treated me with so much civility and consideration, while
I was guilty of great rudeness; staring at him from the bed, and watching all
his toilette motions; for the time my curiosity getting the better of my breeding.
Nevertheless, a man like Queequeg you don't see every day, he and his ways were
well worth unusual regarding.
He
commenced dressing at top by donning his beaver hat, a very tall one, by the
by, and then—still minus his trowsers—he hunted up his boots. What under the
heavens he did it for, I cannot tell, but his next movement was to crush
himself—boots in hand, and hat on—under the bed; when, from sundry violent
gaspings and strainings, I inferred he was hard at work booting himself; though
by no law of propriety that I ever heard of, is any man required to be private
when putting on his boots. But Queequeg, do you see, was a creature in the
transition stage—neither caterpillar nor butterfly. He was just enough
civilized to show off his outlandishness in the strangest possible manners. His
education was not yet completed. He was an undergraduate. If he had not been a
small degree civilized, he very probably would not have troubled himself with
boots at all; but then, if he had not been still a savage, he never would have
dreamt of getting under the bed to put them on. At last, he emerged with his
hat very much dented and crushed down over his eyes, and began creaking and
limping about the room, as if, not being much accustomed to boots, his pair of
damp, wrinkled cowhide ones—probably not made to order either—rather pinched
and tormented him at the first go off of a bitter cold morning.
Seeing,
now, that there were no curtains to the window, and that the street being very
narrow, the house opposite commanded a plain view into the room, and observing
more and more the indecorous figure that Queequeg made, staving about with
little else but his hat and boots on; I begged him as well as I could, to
accelerate his toilet somewhat, and particularly to get into his pantaloons as
soon as possible. He complied, and then proceeded to wash himself. At that time
in the morning any Christian would have washed his face; but Queequeg, to my
amazement, contented himself with restricting his ablutions to his chest, arms,
and hands. He then donned his waistcoat, and taking up a piece of hard soap on
the wash-stand centre table, dipped it into water and commenced lathering his
face. I was watching to see where he kept his razor, when lo and behold, he
takes the harpoon from the bed corner, slips out the long wooden stock,
unsheathes the head, whets it a little on his boot, and striding up to the bit
of mirror against the wall, begins a vigorous scraping, or rather harpooning of
his cheeks. Thinks I, Queequeg, this is using Rogers's best cutlery with a
vengeance. Afterwards I wondered the less at this operation when I came to know
of what fine steel the head of a harpoon is made, and how exceedingly sharp the
long straight edges are always kept.
The
rest of his toilet was soon achieved, and he proudly marched out of the room,
wrapped up in his great pilot monkey jacket, and sporting his harpoon like a
marshal's baton.
CHAPTER
5. Breakfast.
I
quickly followed suit, and descending into the bar-room accosted the grinning
landlord very pleasantly. I cherished no malice towards him, though he had been
skylarking with me not a little in the matter of my bedfellow.
However,
a good laugh is a mighty good thing, and rather too scarce a good thing; the
more's the pity. So, if any one man, in his own proper person, afford stuff for
a good joke to anybody, let him not be backward, but let him cheerfully allow
himself to spend and be spent in that way. And the man that has anything
bountifully laughable about him, be sure there is more in that man than you
perhaps think for.
The
bar-room was now full of the boarders who had been dropping in the night
previous, and whom I had not as yet had a good look at. They were nearly all
whalemen; chief mates, and second mates, and third mates, and sea carpenters,
and sea coopers, and sea blacksmiths, and harpooneers, and ship keepers; a
brown and brawny company, with bosky beards; an unshorn, shaggy set, all
wearing monkey jackets for morning gowns.
You
could pretty plainly tell how long each one had been ashore. This young
fellow's healthy cheek is like a sun-toasted pear in hue, and would seem to
smell almost as musky; he cannot have been three days landed from his Indian
voyage. That man next him looks a few shades lighter; you might say a touch of
satin wood is in him. In the complexion of a third still lingers a tropic tawn,
but slightly bleached withal; he doubtless has tarried whole weeks ashore. But
who could show a cheek like Queequeg? which, barred with various tints, seemed
like the Andes' western slope, to show forth in one array, contrasting
climates, zone by zone.
“Grub,
ho!” now cried the landlord, flinging open a door, and in we went to breakfast.
They
say that men who have seen the world, thereby become quite at ease in manner,
quite self-possessed in company. Not always, though: Ledyard, the great New
England traveller, and Mungo Park, the Scotch one; of all men, they possessed
the least assurance in the parlor. But perhaps the mere crossing of Siberia in
a sledge drawn by dogs as Ledyard did, or the taking a long solitary walk on an
empty stomach, in the negro heart of Africa, which was the sum of poor Mungo's
performances—this kind of travel, I say, may not be the very best mode of
attaining a high social polish. Still, for the most part, that sort of thing is
to be had anywhere.
These
reflections just here are occasioned by the circumstance that after we were all
seated at the table, and I was preparing to hear some good stories about
whaling; to my no small surprise, nearly every man maintained a profound
silence. And not only that, but they looked embarrassed. Yes, here were a set
of sea-dogs, many of whom without the slightest bashfulness had boarded great
whales on the high seas—entire strangers to them—and duelled them dead without
winking; and yet, here they sat at a social breakfast table—all of the same
calling, all of kindred tastes—looking round as sheepishly at each other as
though they had never been out of sight of some sheepfold among the Green
Mountains. A curious sight; these bashful bears, these timid warrior whalemen!
But
as for Queequeg—why, Queequeg sat there among them—at the head of the table,
too, it so chanced; as cool as an icicle. To be sure I cannot say much for his
breeding. His greatest admirer could not have cordially justified his bringing
his harpoon into breakfast with him, and using it there without ceremony;
reaching over the table with it, to the imminent jeopardy of many heads, and
grappling the beefsteaks towards him. But thatwas certainly very coolly done by
him, and every one knows that in most people's estimation, to do anything
coolly is to do it genteelly.
We
will not speak of all Queequeg's peculiarities here; how he eschewed coffee and
hot rolls, and applied his undivided attention to beefsteaks, done rare.
Enough, that when breakfast was over he withdrew like the rest into the public
room, lighted his tomahawk-pipe, and was sitting there quietly digesting and
smoking with his inseparable hat on, when I sallied out for a stroll.
CHAPTER
6. The Street.
If
I had been astonished at first catching a glimpse of so outlandish an
individual as Queequeg circulating among the polite society of a civilized
town, that astonishment soon departed upon taking my first daylight stroll
through the streets of New Bedford.
In
thoroughfares nigh the docks, any considerable seaport will frequently offer to
view the queerest looking nondescripts from foreign parts. Even in Broadway and
Chestnut streets, Mediterranean mariners will sometimes jostle the affrighted
ladies. Regent Street is not unknown to Lascars and Malays; and at Bombay, in
the Apollo Green, live Yankees have often scared the natives. But New Bedford
beats all Water Street and Wapping. In these last-mentioned haunts you see only
sailors; but in New Bedford, actual cannibals stand chatting at street corners;
savages outright; many of whom yet carry on their bones unholy flesh. It makes
a stranger stare.
But,
besides the Feegeeans, Tongatobooarrs, Erromanggoans, Pannangians, and
Brighggians, and, besides the wild specimens of the whaling-craft which
unheeded reel about the streets, you will see other sights still more curious,
certainly more comical. There weekly arrive in this town scores of green
Vermonters and New Hampshire men, all athirst for gain and glory in the
fishery. They are mostly young, of stalwart frames; fellows who have felled
forests, and now seek to drop the axe and snatch the whale-lance. Many are as
green as the Green Mountains whence they came. In some things you would think
them but a few hours old. Look there! that chap strutting round the corner. He
wears a beaver hat and swallow-tailed coat, girdled with a sailor-belt and sheath-knife.
Here comes another with a sou'-wester and a bombazine cloak.
No
town-bred dandy will compare with a country-bred one—I mean a downright bumpkin
dandy—a fellow that, in the dog-days, will mow his two acres in buckskin gloves
for fear of tanning his hands. Now when a country dandy like this takes it into
his head to make a distinguished reputation, and joins the great whale-fishery,
you should see the comical things he does upon reaching the seaport. In
bespeaking his sea-outfit, he orders bell-buttons to his waistcoats; straps to
his canvas trowsers. Ah, poor Hay-Seed! how bitterly will burst those straps in
the first howling gale, when thou art driven, straps, buttons, and all, down
the throat of the tempest.
But
think not that this famous town has only harpooneers, cannibals, and bumpkins
to show her visitors. Not at all. Still New Bedford is a queer place. Had it
not been for us whalemen, that tract of land would this day perhaps have been
in as howling condition as the coast of Labrador. As it is, parts of her back
country are enough to frighten one, they look so bony. The town itself is
perhaps the dearest place to live in, in all New England. It is a land of oil,
true enough: but not like Canaan; a land, also, of corn and wine. The streets do
not run with milk; nor in the spring-time do they pave them with fresh eggs.
Yet, in spite of this, nowhere in all America will you find more patrician-like
houses; parks and gardens more opulent, than in New Bedford. Whence came they?
how planted upon this once scraggy scoria of a country?
Go
and gaze upon the iron emblematical harpoons round yonder lofty mansion, and
your question will be answered. Yes; all these brave houses and flowery gardens
came from the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian oceans. One and all, they were
harpooned and dragged up hither from the bottom of the sea. Can Herr Alexander
perform a feat like that?
In
New Bedford, fathers, they say, give whales for dowers to their daughters, and
portion off their nieces with a few porpoises a-piece. You must go to New
Bedford to see a brilliant wedding; for, they say, they have reservoirs of oil
in every house, and every night recklessly burn their lengths in spermaceti
candles.
In
summer time, the town is sweet to see; full of fine maples—long avenues of
green and gold. And in August, high in air, the beautiful and bountiful
horse-chestnuts, candelabra-wise, proffer the passer-by their tapering upright
cones of congregated blossoms. So omnipotent is art; which in many a district
of New Bedford has superinduced bright terraces of flowers upon the barren
refuse rocks thrown aside at creation's final day.
And
the women of New Bedford, they bloom like their own red roses. But roses only
bloom in summer; whereas the fine carnation of their cheeks is perennial as
sunlight in the seventh heavens. Elsewhere match that bloom of theirs, ye
cannot, save in Salem, where they tell me the young girls breathe such musk,
their sailor sweethearts smell them miles off shore, as though they were
drawing nigh the odorous Moluccas instead of the Puritanic sands.
CHAPTER
7. The Chapel.
In
this same New Bedford there stands a Whaleman's Chapel, and few are the moody
fishermen, shortly bound for the Indian Ocean or Pacific, who fail to make a
Sunday visit to the spot. I am sure that I did not.
Returning
from my first morning stroll, I again sallied out upon this special errand. The
sky had changed from clear, sunny cold, to driving sleet and mist. Wrapping
myself in my shaggy jacket of the cloth called bearskin, I fought my way
against the stubborn storm. Entering, I found a small scattered congregation of
sailors, and sailors' wives and widows. A muffled silence reigned, only broken
at times by the shrieks of the storm. Each silent worshipper seemed purposely
sitting apart from the other, as if each silent grief were insular and
incommunicable. The chaplain had not yet arrived; and there these silent
islands of men and women sat steadfastly eyeing several marble tablets, with
black borders, masoned into the wall on either side the pulpit. Three of them
ran something like the following, but I do not pretend to quote:—
SACRED
TO THE MEMORY OF JOHN TALBOT, Who, at the age of eighteen, was lost overboard,
Near the Isle of Desolation, off Patagonia, November 1st, 1836. THIS TABLET Is
erected to his Memory BY HIS SISTER.
SACRED
TO THE MEMORY OF ROBERT LONG, WILLIS ELLERY, NATHAN COLEMAN, WALTER CANNY, SETH
MACY, AND SAMUEL GLEIG, Forming one of the boats' crews OF THE SHIP ELIZA Who
were towed out of sight by a Whale, On the Off-shore Ground in the PACIFIC,
December 31st, 1839. THIS MARBLE Is here placed by their surviving SHIPMATES.
SACRED
TO THE MEMORY OF The late CAPTAIN EZEKIEL HARDY, Who in the bows of his boat
was killed by a Sperm Whale on the coast of Japan, August 3d, 1833. THIS TABLET
Is erected to his Memory BY HIS WIDOW.
Shaking
off the sleet from my ice-glazed hat and jacket, I seated myself near the door,
and turning sideways was surprised to see Queequeg near me. Affected by the
solemnity of the scene, there was a wondering gaze of incredulous curiosity in
his countenance. This savage was the only person present who seemed to notice
my entrance; because he was the only one who could not read, and, therefore,
was not reading those frigid inscriptions on the wall. Whether any of the
relatives of the seamen whose names appeared there were now among the
congregation, I knew not; but so many are the unrecorded accidents in the
fishery, and so plainly did several women present wear the countenance if not
the trappings of some unceasing grief, that I feel sure that here before me
were assembled those, in whose unhealing hearts the sight of those bleak
tablets sympathetically caused the old wounds to bleed afresh.
Oh!
ye whose dead lie buried beneath the green grass; who standing among flowers
can say—here, here lies my beloved; ye know not the desolation that broods in
bosoms like these. What bitter blanks in those black-bordered marbles which
cover no ashes! What despair in those immovable inscriptions! What deadly voids
and unbidden infidelities in the lines that seem to gnaw upon all Faith, and
refuse resurrections to the beings who have placelessly perished without a
grave. As well might those tablets stand in the cave of Elephanta as here.
In
what census of living creatures, the dead of mankind are included; why it is
that a universal proverb says of them, that they tell no tales, though
containing more secrets than the Goodwin Sands; how it is that to his name who
yesterday departed for the other world, we prefix so significant and infidel a
word, and yet do not thus entitle him, if he but embarks for the remotest Indies
of this living earth; why the Life Insurance Companies pay death-forfeitures
upon immortals; in what eternal, unstirring paralysis, and deadly, hopeless
trance, yet lies antique Adam who died sixty round centuries ago; how it is
that we still refuse to be comforted for those who we nevertheless maintain are
dwelling in unspeakable bliss; why all the living so strive to hush all the
dead; wherefore but the rumor of a knocking in a tomb will terrify a whole
city. All these things are not without their meanings.
But
Faith, like a jackal, feeds among the tombs, and even from these dead doubts
she gathers her most vital hope.
It
needs scarcely to be told, with what feelings, on the eve of a Nantucket
voyage, I regarded those marble tablets, and by the murky light of that
darkened, doleful day read the fate of the whalemen who had gone before me.
Yes, Ishmael, the same fate may be thine. But somehow I grew merry again.
Delightful inducements to embark, fine chance for promotion, it seems—aye, a
stove boat will make me an immortal by brevet. Yes, there is death in this
business of whaling—a speechlessly quick chaotic bundling of a man into
Eternity. But what then? Methinks we have hugely mistaken this matter of Life
and Death. Methinks that what they call my shadow here on earth is my true
substance. Methinks that in looking at things spiritual, we are too much like
oysters observing the sun through the water, and thinking that thick water the
thinnest of air. Methinks my body is but the lees of my better being. In fact
take my body who will, take it I say, it is not me. And therefore three cheers
for Nantucket; and come a stove boat and stove body when they will, for stave
my soul, Jove himself cannot.
CHAPTER
8. The Pulpit.
I
had not been seated very long ere a man of a certain venerable robustness
entered; immediately as the storm-pelted door flew back upon admitting him, a
quick regardful eyeing of him by all the congregation, sufficiently attested
that this fine old man was the chaplain. Yes, it was the famous Father Mapple,
so called by the whalemen, among whom he was a very great favourite. He had
been a sailor and a harpooneer in his youth, but for many years past had
dedicated his life to the ministry. At the time I now write of, Father Mapple
was in the hardy winter of a healthy old age; that sort of old age which seems
merging into a second flowering youth, for among all the fissures of his
wrinkles, there shone certain mild gleams of a newly developing bloom—the
spring verdure peeping forth even beneath February's snow. No one having
previously heard his history, could for the first time behold Father Mapple without
the utmost interest, because there were certain engrafted clerical
peculiarities about him, imputable to that adventurous maritime life he had
led. When he entered I observed that he carried no umbrella, and certainly had
not come in his carriage, for his tarpaulin hat ran down with melting sleet,
and his great pilot cloth jacket seemed almost to drag him to the floor with
the weight of the water it had absorbed. However, hat and coat and overshoes
were one by one removed, and hung up in a little space in an adjacent corner;
when, arrayed in a decent suit, he quietly approached the pulpit.
Like
most old fashioned pulpits, it was a very lofty one, and since a regular stairs
to such a height would, by its long angle with the floor, seriously contract
the already small area of the chapel, the architect, it seemed, had acted upon
the hint of Father Mapple, and finished the pulpit without a stairs,
substituting a perpendicular side ladder, like those used in mounting a ship
from a boat at sea. The wife of a whaling captain had provided the chapel with
a handsome pair of red worsted man-ropes for this ladder, which, being itself
nicely headed, and stained with a mahogany colour, the whole contrivance,
considering what manner of chapel it was, seemed by no means in bad taste.
Halting for an instant at the foot of the ladder, and with both hands grasping
the ornamental knobs of the man-ropes, Father Mapple cast a look upwards, and
then with a truly sailor-like but still reverential dexterity, hand over hand,
mounted the steps as if ascending the main-top of his vessel.
The
perpendicular parts of this side ladder, as is usually the case with swinging
ones, were of cloth-covered rope, only the rounds were of wood, so that at
every step there was a joint. At my first glimpse of the pulpit, it had not
escaped me that however convenient for a ship, these joints in the present
instance seemed unnecessary. For I was not prepared to see Father Mapple after
gaining the height, slowly turn round, and stooping over the pulpit,
deliberately drag up the ladder step by step, till the whole was deposited
within, leaving him impregnable in his little Quebec.
I
pondered some time without fully comprehending the reason for this. Father
Mapple enjoyed such a wide reputation for sincerity and sanctity, that I could
not suspect him of courting notoriety by any mere tricks of the stage. No,
thought I, there must be some sober reason for this thing; furthermore, it must
symbolize something unseen. Can it be, then, that by that act of physical
isolation, he signifies his spiritual withdrawal for the time, from all outward
worldly ties and connexions? Yes, for replenished with the meat and wine of the
word, to the faithful man of God, this pulpit, I see, is a self-containing
stronghold—a lofty Ehrenbreitstein, with a perennial well of water within the
walls.
But
the side ladder was not the only strange feature of the place, borrowed from
the chaplain's former sea-farings. Between the marble cenotaphs on either hand
of the pulpit, the wall which formed its back was adorned with a large painting
representing a gallant ship beating against a terrible storm off a lee coast of
black rocks and snowy breakers. But high above the flying scud and dark-rolling
clouds, there floated a little isle of sunlight, from which beamed forth an
angel's face; and this bright face shed a distinct spot of radiance upon the
ship's tossed deck, something like that silver plate now inserted into the
Victory's plank where Nelson fell. “Ah, noble ship,” the angel seemed to say,
“beat on, beat on, thou noble ship, and bear a hardy helm; for lo! the sun is
breaking through; the clouds are rolling off—serenest azure is at hand.”
Nor
was the pulpit itself without a trace of the same sea-taste that had achieved
the ladder and the picture. Its panelled front was in the likeness of a ship's
bluff bows, and the Holy Bible rested on a projecting piece of scroll work,
fashioned after a ship's fiddle-headed beak.
What
could be more full of meaning?—for the pulpit is ever this earth's foremost
part; all the rest comes in its rear; the pulpit leads the world. From thence
it is the storm of God's quick wrath is first descried, and the bow must bear
the earliest brunt. From thence it is the God of breezes fair or foul is first
invoked for favourable winds. Yes, the world's a ship on its passage out, and
not a voyage complete; and the pulpit is its prow.
CHAPTER
9. The Sermon.
Father
Mapple rose, and in a mild voice of unassuming authority ordered the scattered
people to condense. “Starboard gangway, there! side away to larboard—larboard
gangway to starboard! Midships! midships!”
There
was a low rumbling of heavy sea-boots among the benches, and a still slighter
shuffling of women's shoes, and all was quiet again, and every eye on the
preacher.
He
paused a little; then kneeling in the pulpit's bows, folded his large brown
hands across his chest, uplifted his closed eyes, and offered a prayer so
deeply devout that he seemed kneeling and praying at the bottom of the sea.
This
ended, in prolonged solemn tones, like the continual tolling of a bell in a
ship that is foundering at sea in a fog—in such tones he commenced reading the
following hymn; but changing his manner towards the concluding stanzas, burst
forth with a pealing exultation and joy—
“The ribs and terrors in the whale,
Arched over me a dismal gloom,
While all God's sun-lit waves rolled by,
And lift me deepening down to doom.
“I saw the opening maw of hell,
With endless pains and sorrows there;
Which none but they that feel can tell—
Oh, I was plunging to despair.
“In black distress, I called my God,
When I could scarce believe him mine,
He bowed his ear to my complaints—
No more the whale did me confine.
“With speed he flew to my relief,
As on a radiant dolphin borne;
Awful, yet bright, as lightning shone
The face of my Deliverer God.
“My song for ever shall record
That terrible, that joyful hour;
I give the glory to my God,
His all the mercy and the power.”
Nearly
all joined in singing this hymn, which swelled high above the howling of the
storm. A brief pause ensued; the preacher slowly turned over the leaves of the
Bible, and at last, folding his hand down upon the proper page, said: “Beloved
shipmates, clinch the last verse of the first chapter of Jonah—'And God had
prepared a great fish to swallow up Jonah.'”
“Shipmates,
this book, containing only four chapters—four yarns—is one of the smallest
strands in the mighty cable of the Scriptures. Yet what depths of the soul does
Jonah's deep sealine sound! what a pregnant lesson to us is this prophet! What
a noble thing is that canticle in the fish's belly! How billow-like and
boisterously grand! We feel the floods surging over us; we sound with him to
the kelpy bottom of the waters; sea-weed and all the slime of the sea is about us!
But what is this lesson that the book of Jonah teaches? Shipmates, it is a
two-stranded lesson; a lesson to us all as sinful men, and a lesson to me as a
pilot of the living God. As sinful men, it is a lesson to us all, because it is
a story of the sin, hard-heartedness, suddenly awakened fears, the swift
punishment, repentance, prayers, and finally the deliverance and joy of Jonah.
As with all sinners among men, the sin of this son of Amittai was in his wilful
disobedience of the command of God—never mind now what that command was, or how
conveyed—which he found a hard command. But all the things that God would have
us do are hard for us to do—remember that—and hence, he oftener commands us
than endeavors to persuade. And if we obey God, we must disobey ourselves; and
it is in this disobeying ourselves, wherein the hardness of obeying God
consists.
“With
this sin of disobedience in him, Jonah still further flouts at God, by seeking
to flee from Him. He thinks that a ship made by men will carry him into
countries where God does not reign, but only the Captains of this earth. He
skulks about the wharves of Joppa, and seeks a ship that's bound for Tarshish.
There lurks, perhaps, a hitherto unheeded meaning here. By all accounts
Tarshish could have been no other city than the modern Cadiz. That's the
opinion of learned men. And where is Cadiz, shipmates? Cadiz is in Spain; as
far by water, from Joppa, as Jonah could possibly have sailed in those ancient
days, when the Atlantic was an almost unknown sea. Because Joppa, the modern
Jaffa, shipmates, is on the most easterly coast of the Mediterranean, the
Syrian; and Tarshish or Cadiz more than two thousand miles to the westward from
that, just outside the Straits of Gibraltar. See ye not then, shipmates, that Jonah
sought to flee world-wide from God? Miserable man! Oh! most contemptible and
worthy of all scorn; with slouched hat and guilty eye, skulking from his God;
prowling among the shipping like a vile burglar hastening to cross the seas. So
disordered, self-condemning is his look, that had there been policemen in those
days, Jonah, on the mere suspicion of something wrong, had been arrested ere he
touched a deck. How plainly he's a fugitive! no baggage, not a hat-box, valise,
or carpet-bag,—no friends accompany him to the wharf with their adieux. At
last, after much dodging search, he finds the Tarshish ship receiving the last
items of her cargo; and as he steps on board to see its Captain in the cabin,
all the sailors for the moment desist from hoisting in the goods, to mark the
stranger's evil eye. Jonah sees this; but in vain he tries to look all ease and
confidence; in vain essays his wretched smile. Strong intuitions of the man
assure the mariners he can be no innocent. In their gamesome but still serious way,
one whispers to the other—“Jack, he's robbed a widow;” or, “Joe, do you mark
him; he's a bigamist;” or, “Harry lad, I guess he's the adulterer that broke
jail in old Gomorrah, or belike, one of the missing murderers from Sodom.”
Another runs to read the bill that's stuck against the spile upon the wharf to
which the ship is moored, offering five hundred gold coins for the apprehension
of a parricide, and containing a description of his person. He reads, and looks
from Jonah to the bill; while all his sympathetic shipmates now crowd round
Jonah, prepared to lay their hands upon him. Frighted Jonah trembles, and
summoning all his boldness to his face, only looks so much the more a coward.
He will not confess himself suspected; but that itself is strong suspicion. So
he makes the best of it; and when the sailors find him not to be the man that
is advertised, they let him pass, and he descends into the cabin.
“'Who's
there?' cries the Captain at his busy desk, hurriedly making out his papers for
the Customs—'Who's there?' Oh! how that harmless question mangles Jonah! For
the instant he almost turns to flee again. But he rallies. 'I seek a passage in
this ship to Tarshish; how soon sail ye, sir?' Thus far the busy Captain had
not looked up to Jonah, though the man now stands before him; but no sooner
does he hear that hollow voice, than he darts a scrutinizing glance. 'We sail
with the next coming tide,' at last he slowly answered, still intently eyeing
him. 'No sooner, sir?'—'Soon enough for any honest man that goes a passenger.'
Ha! Jonah, that's another stab. But he swiftly calls away the Captain from that
scent. 'I'll sail with ye,'—he says,—'the passage money how much is that?—I'll
pay now.' For it is particularly written, shipmates, as if it were a thing not
to be overlooked in this history, 'that he paid the fare thereof' ere the craft
did sail. And taken with the context, this is full of meaning.
“Now
Jonah's Captain, shipmates, was one whose discernment detects crime in any, but
whose cupidity exposes it only in the penniless. In this world, shipmates, sin
that pays its way can travel freely, and without a passport; whereas Virtue, if
a pauper, is stopped at all frontiers. So Jonah's Captain prepares to test the
length of Jonah's purse, ere he judge him openly. He charges him thrice the
usual sum; and it's assented to. Then the Captain knows that Jonah is a
fugitive; but at the same time resolves to help a flight that paves its rear
with gold. Yet when Jonah fairly takes out his purse, prudent suspicions still
molest the Captain. He rings every coin to find a counterfeit. Not a forger,
any way, he mutters; and Jonah is put down for his passage. 'Point out my
state-room, Sir,' says Jonah now, 'I'm travel-weary; I need sleep.' 'Thou
lookest like it,' says the Captain, 'there's thy room.' Jonah enters, and would
lock the door, but the lock contains no key. Hearing him foolishly fumbling
there, the Captain laughs lowly to himself, and mutters something about the
doors of convicts' cells being never allowed to be locked within. All dressed
and dusty as he is, Jonah throws himself into his berth, and finds the little
state-room ceiling almost resting on his forehead. The air is close, and Jonah
gasps. Then, in that contracted hole, sunk, too, beneath the ship's water-line,
Jonah feels the heralding presentiment of that stifling hour, when the whale
shall hold him in the smallest of his bowels' wards.
“Screwed
at its axis against the side, a swinging lamp slightly oscillates in Jonah's
room; and the ship, heeling over towards the wharf with the weight of the last
bales received, the lamp, flame and all, though in slight motion, still
maintains a permanent obliquity with reference to the room; though, in truth,
infallibly straight itself, it but made obvious the false, lying levels among
which it hung. The lamp alarms and frightens Jonah; as lying in his berth his
tormented eyes roll round the place, and this thus far successful fugitive
finds no refuge for his restless glance. But that contradiction in the lamp more
and more appals him. The floor, the ceiling, and the side, are all awry. 'Oh!
so my conscience hangs in me!' he groans, 'straight upwards, so it burns; but
the chambers of my soul are all in crookedness!'
“Like
one who after a night of drunken revelry hies to his bed, still reeling, but
with conscience yet pricking him, as the plungings of the Roman race-horse but
so much the more strike his steel tags into him; as one who in that miserable
plight still turns and turns in giddy anguish, praying God for annihilation
until the fit be passed; and at last amid the whirl of woe he feels, a deep
stupor steals over him, as over the man who bleeds to death, for conscience is
the wound, and there's naught to staunch it; so, after sore wrestlings in his
berth, Jonah's prodigy of ponderous misery drags him drowning down to sleep.
“And
now the time of tide has come; the ship casts off her cables; and from the
deserted wharf the uncheered ship for Tarshish, all careening, glides to sea.
That ship, my friends, was the first of recorded smugglers! the contraband was
Jonah. But the sea rebels; he will not bear the wicked burden. A dreadful storm
comes on, the ship is like to break. But now when the boatswain calls all hands
to lighten her; when boxes, bales, and jars are clattering overboard; when the
wind is shrieking, and the men are yelling, and every plank thunders with
trampling feet right over Jonah's head; in all this raging tumult, Jonah sleeps
his hideous sleep. He sees no black sky and raging sea, feels not the reeling
timbers, and little hears he or heeds he the far rush of the mighty whale,
which even now with open mouth is cleaving the seas after him. Aye, shipmates,
Jonah was gone down into the sides of the ship—a berth in the cabin as I have
taken it, and was fast asleep. But the frightened master comes to him, and
shrieks in his dead ear, 'What meanest thou, O sleeper! arise!' Startled from
his lethargy by that direful cry, Jonah staggers to his feet, and stumbling to
the deck, grasps a shroud, to look out upon the sea. But at that moment he is
sprung upon by a panther billow leaping over the bulwarks. Wave after wave thus
leaps into the ship, and finding no speedy vent runs roaring fore and aft, till
the mariners come nigh to drowning while yet afloat. And ever, as the white
moon shows her affrighted face from the steep gullies in the blackness
overhead, aghast Jonah sees the rearing bowsprit pointing high upward, but soon
beat downward again towards the tormented deep.
“Terrors
upon terrors run shouting through his soul. In all his cringing attitudes, the
God-fugitive is now too plainly known. The sailors mark him; more and more
certain grow their suspicions of him, and at last, fully to test the truth, by
referring the whole matter to high Heaven, they fall to casting lots, to see
for whose cause this great tempest was upon them. The lot is Jonah's; that
discovered, then how furiously they mob him with their questions. 'What is
thine occupation? Whence comest thou? Thy country? What people? But mark now,
my shipmates, the behavior of poor Jonah. The eager mariners but ask him who he
is, and where from; whereas, they not only receive an answer to those
questions, but likewise another answer to a question not put by them, but the
unsolicited answer is forced from Jonah by the hard hand of God that is upon
him.
“'I
am a Hebrew,' he cries—and then—'I fear the Lord the God of Heaven who hath
made the sea and the dry land!' Fear him, O Jonah? Aye, well mightest thou fear
the Lord God then! Straightway, he now goes on to make a full confession;
whereupon the mariners became more and more appalled, but still are pitiful.
For when Jonah, not yet supplicating God for mercy, since he but too well knew
the darkness of his deserts,—when wretched Jonah cries out to them to take him
and cast him forth into the sea, for he knew that for hissake this great
tempest was upon them; they mercifully turn from him, and seek by other means
to save the ship. But all in vain; the indignant gale howls louder; then, with
one hand raised invokingly to God, with the other they not unreluctantly lay
hold of Jonah.
“And
now behold Jonah taken up as an anchor and dropped into the sea; when instantly
an oily calmness floats out from the east, and the sea is still, as Jonah
carries down the gale with him, leaving smooth water behind. He goes down in
the whirling heart of such a masterless commotion that he scarce heeds the
moment when he drops seething into the yawning jaws awaiting him; and the whale
shoots-to all his ivory teeth, like so many white bolts, upon his prison. Then
Jonah prayed unto the Lord out of the fish's belly. But observe his prayer, and
learn a weighty lesson. For sinful as he is, Jonah does not weep and wail for
direct deliverance. He feels that his dreadful punishment is just. He leaves
all his deliverance to God, contenting himself with this, that spite of all his
pains and pangs, he will still look towards His holy temple. And here,
shipmates, is true and faithful repentance; not clamorous for pardon, but
grateful for punishment. And how pleasing to God was this conduct in Jonah, is
shown in the eventual deliverance of him from the sea and the whale. Shipmates,
I do not place Jonah before you to be copied for his sin but I do place him
before you as a model for repentance. Sin not; but if you do, take heed to
repent of it like Jonah.”
While
he was speaking these words, the howling of the shrieking, slanting storm
without seemed to add new power to the preacher, who, when describing Jonah's
sea-storm, seemed tossed by a storm himself. His deep chest heaved as with a
ground-swell; his tossed arms seemed the warring elements at work; and the
thunders that rolled away from off his swarthy brow, and the light leaping from
his eye, made all his simple hearers look on him with a quick fear that was
strange to them.
There
now came a lull in his look, as he silently turned over the leaves of the Book
once more; and, at last, standing motionless, with closed eyes, for the moment,
seemed communing with God and himself.
But
again he leaned over towards the people, and bowing his head lowly, with an
aspect of the deepest yet manliest humility, he spake these words:
“Shipmates,
God has laid but one hand upon you; both his hands press upon me. I have read
ye by what murky light may be mine the lesson that Jonah teaches to all
sinners; and therefore to ye, and still more to me, for I am a greater sinner
than ye. And now how gladly would I come down from this mast-head and sit on
the hatches there where you sit, and listen as you listen, while some one of
you reads me that other and more awful lesson which Jonah teaches to me, as a
pilot of the living God. How being an anointed pilot-prophet, or speaker of
true things, and bidden by the Lord to sound those unwelcome truths in the ears
of a wicked Nineveh, Jonah, appalled at the hostility he should raise, fled
from his mission, and sought to escape his duty and his God by taking ship at
Joppa. But God is everywhere; Tarshish he never reached. As we have seen, God
came upon him in the whale, and swallowed him down to living gulfs of doom, and
with swift slantings tore him along 'into the midst of the seas,' where the
eddying depths sucked him ten thousand fathoms down, and 'the weeds were
wrapped about his head,' and all the watery world of woe bowled over him. Yet
even then beyond the reach of any plummet—'out of the belly of hell'—when the
whale grounded upon the ocean's utmost bones, even then, God heard the
engulphed, repenting prophet when he cried. Then God spake unto the fish; and
from the shuddering cold and blackness of the sea, the whale came breeching up
towards the warm and pleasant sun, and all the delights of air and earth; and
'vomited out Jonah upon the dry land;' when the word of the Lord came a second
time; and Jonah, bruised and beaten—his ears, like two sea-shells, still
multitudinously murmuring of the ocean—Jonah did the Almighty's bidding. And
what was that, shipmates? To preach the Truth to the face of Falsehood! That
was it!
“This,
shipmates, this is that other lesson; and woe to that pilot of the living God
who slights it. Woe to him whom this world charms from Gospel duty! Woe to him
who seeks to pour oil upon the waters when God has brewed them into a gale! Woe
to him who seeks to please rather than to appal! Woe to him whose good name is
more to him than goodness! Woe to him who, in this world, courts not dishonor!
Woe to him who would not be true, even though to be false were salvation! Yea,
woe to him who, as the great Pilot Paul has it, while preaching to others is
himself a castaway!”
He
dropped and fell away from himself for a moment; then lifting his face to them
again, showed a deep joy in his eyes, as he cried out with a heavenly
enthusiasm,—“But oh! shipmates! on the starboard hand of every woe, there is a
sure delight; and higher the top of that delight, than the bottom of the woe is
deep. Is not the main-truck higher than the kelson is low? Delight is to him—a
far, far upward, and inward delight—who against the proud gods and commodores
of this earth, ever stands forth his own inexorable self. Delight is to him
whose strong arms yet support him, when the ship of this base treacherous world
has gone down beneath him. Delight is to him, who gives no quarter in the
truth, and kills, burns, and destroys all sin though he pluck it out from under
the robes of Senators and Judges. Delight,—top-gallant delight is to him, who
acknowledges no law or lord, but the Lord his God, and is only a patriot to
heaven. Delight is to him, whom all the waves of the billows of the seas of the
boisterous mob can never shake from this sure Keel of the Ages. And eternal
delight and deliciousness will be his, who coming to lay him down, can say with
his final breath—O Father!—chiefly known to me by Thy rod—mortal or immortal,
here I die. I have striven to be Thine, more than to be this world's, or mine
own. Yet this is nothing: I leave eternity to Thee; for what is man that he
should live out the lifetime of his God?”
He
said no more, but slowly waving a benediction, covered his face with his hands,
and so remained kneeling, till all the people had departed, and he was left
alone in the place.
CHAPTER
10. A Bosom Friend.
Returning
to the Spouter-Inn from the Chapel, I found Queequeg there quite alone; he
having left the Chapel before the benediction some time. He was sitting on a
bench before the fire, with his feet on the stove hearth, and in one hand was
holding close up to his face that little negro idol of his; peering hard into
its face, and with a jack-knife gently whittling away at its nose, meanwhile
humming to himself in his heathenish way.
But
being now interrupted, he put up the image; and pretty soon, going to the
table, took up a large book there, and placing it on his lap began counting the
pages with deliberate regularity; at every fiftieth page—as I fancied—stopping
a moment, looking vacantly around him, and giving utterance to a long-drawn
gurgling whistle of astonishment. He would then begin again at the next fifty;
seeming to commence at number one each time, as though he could not count more
than fifty, and it was only by such a large number of fifties being found
together, that his astonishment at the multitude of pages was excited.
With
much interest I sat watching him. Savage though he was, and hideously marred
about the face—at least to my taste—his countenance yet had a something in it
which was by no means disagreeable. You cannot hide the soul. Through all his
unearthly tattooings, I thought I saw the traces of a simple honest heart; and
in his large, deep eyes, fiery black and bold, there seemed tokens of a spirit
that would dare a thousand devils. And besides all this, there was a certain
lofty bearing about the Pagan, which even his uncouthness could not altogether
maim. He looked like a man who had never cringed and never had had a creditor.
Whether it was, too, that his head being shaved, his forehead was drawn out in
freer and brighter relief, and looked more expansive than it otherwise would,
this I will not venture to decide; but certain it was his head was
phrenologically an excellent one. It may seem ridiculous, but it reminded me of
General Washington's head, as seen in the popular busts of him. It had the same
long regularly graded retreating slope from above the brows, which were
likewise very projecting, like two long promontories thickly wooded on top.
Queequeg was George Washington cannibalistically developed.
Whilst
I was thus closely scanning him, half-pretending meanwhile to be looking out at
the storm from the casement, he never heeded my presence, never troubled
himself with so much as a single glance; but appeared wholly occupied with
counting the pages of the marvellous book. Considering how sociably we had been
sleeping together the night previous, and especially considering the
affectionate arm I had found thrown over me upon waking in the morning, I
thought this indifference of his very strange. But savages are strange beings;
at times you do not know exactly how to take them. At first they are overawing;
their calm self-collectedness of simplicity seems a Socratic wisdom. I had
noticed also that Queequeg never consorted at all, or but very little, with the
other seamen in the inn. He made no advances whatever; appeared to have no
desire to enlarge the circle of his acquaintances. All this struck me as mighty
singular; yet, upon second thoughts, there was something almost sublime in it.
Here was a man some twenty thousand miles from home, by the way of Cape Horn,
that is—which was the only way he could get there—thrown among people as
strange to him as though he were in the planet Jupiter; and yet he seemed
entirely at his ease; preserving the utmost serenity; content with his own
companionship; always equal to himself. Surely this was a touch of fine
philosophy; though no doubt he had never heard there was such a thing as that.
But, perhaps, to be true philosophers, we mortals should not be conscious of so
living or so striving. So soon as I hear that such or such a man gives himself
out for a philosopher, I conclude that, like the dyspeptic old woman, he must
have “broken his digester.”
As
I sat there in that now lonely room; the fire burning low, in that mild stage
when, after its first intensity has warmed the air, it then only glows to be
looked at; the evening shades and phantoms gathering round the casements, and
peering in upon us silent, solitary twain; the storm booming without in solemn
swells; I began to be sensible of strange feelings. I felt a melting in me. No
more my splintered heart and maddened hand were turned against the wolfish
world. This soothing savage had redeemed it. There he sat, his very
indifference speaking a nature in which there lurked no civilized hypocrisies
and bland deceits. Wild he was; a very sight of sights to see; yet I began to
feel myself mysteriously drawn towards him. And those same things that would
have repelled most others, they were the very magnets that thus drew me. I'll
try a pagan friend, thought I, since Christian kindness has proved but hollow
courtesy. I drew my bench near him, and made some friendly signs and hints,
doing my best to talk with him meanwhile. At first he little noticed these
advances; but presently, upon my referring to his last night's hospitalities,
he made out to ask me whether we were again to be bedfellows. I told him yes;
whereat I thought he looked pleased, perhaps a little complimented.
We
then turned over the book together, and I endeavored to explain to him the
purpose of the printing, and the meaning of the few pictures that were in it.
Thus I soon engaged his interest; and from that we went to jabbering the best
we could about the various outer sights to be seen in this famous town. Soon I
proposed a social smoke; and, producing his pouch and tomahawk, he quietly
offered me a puff. And then we sat exchanging puffs from that wild pipe of his,
and keeping it regularly passing between us.
If
there yet lurked any ice of indifference towards me in the Pagan's breast, this
pleasant, genial smoke we had, soon thawed it out, and left us cronies. He
seemed to take to me quite as naturally and unbiddenly as I to him; and when
our smoke was over, he pressed his forehead against mine, clasped me round the
waist, and said that henceforth we were married; meaning, in his country's
phrase, that we were bosom friends; he would gladly die for me, if need should
be. In a countryman, this sudden flame of friendship would have seemed far too
premature, a thing to be much distrusted; but in this simple savage those old
rules would not apply.
After
supper, and another social chat and smoke, we went to our room together. He
made me a present of his embalmed head; took out his enormous tobacco wallet,
and groping under the tobacco, drew out some thirty dollars in silver; then
spreading them on the table, and mechanically dividing them into two equal
portions, pushed one of them towards me, and said it was mine. I was going to
remonstrate; but he silenced me by pouring them into my trowsers' pockets. I
let them stay. He then went about his evening prayers, took out his idol, and
removed the paper fireboard. By certain signs and symptoms, I thought he seemed
anxious for me to join him; but well knowing what was to follow, I deliberated
a moment whether, in case he invited me, I would comply or otherwise.
I
was a good Christian; born and bred in the bosom of the infallible Presbyterian
Church. How then could I unite with this wild idolator in worshipping his piece
of wood? But what is worship? thought I. Do you suppose now, Ishmael, that the
magnanimous God of heaven and earth—pagans and all included—can possibly be
jealous of an insignificant bit of black wood? Impossible! But what is
worship?—to do the will of God—that is worship. And what is the will of God?—to
do to my fellow man what I would have my fellow man to do to me—that is the
will of God. Now, Queequeg is my fellow man. And what do I wish that this
Queequeg would do to me? Why, unite with me in my particular Presbyterian form
of worship. Consequently, I must then unite with him in his; ergo, I must turn
idolator. So I kindled the shavings; helped prop up the innocent little idol;
offered him burnt biscuit with Queequeg; salamed before him twice or thrice;
kissed his nose; and that done, we undressed and went to bed, at peace with our
own consciences and all the world. But we did not go to sleep without some
little chat.
How
it is I know not; but there is no place like a bed for confidential disclosures
between friends. Man and wife, they say, there open the very bottom of their
souls to each other; and some old couples often lie and chat over old times
till nearly morning. Thus, then, in our hearts' honeymoon, lay I and Queequeg—a
cosy, loving pair.
CHAPTER
11. Nightgown.
We
had lain thus in bed, chatting and napping at short intervals, and Queequeg now
and then affectionately throwing his brown tattooed legs over mine, and then
drawing them back; so entirely sociable and free and easy were we; when, at
last, by reason of our confabulations, what little nappishness remained in us
altogether departed, and we felt like getting up again, though day-break was
yet some way down the future.
Yes,
we became very wakeful; so much so that our recumbent position began to grow
wearisome, and by little and little we found ourselves sitting up; the clothes
well tucked around us, leaning against the head-board with our four knees drawn
up close together, and our two noses bending over them, as if our kneepans were
warming-pans. We felt very nice and snug, the more so since it was so chilly
out of doors; indeed out of bed-clothes too, seeing that there was no fire in
the room. The more so, I say, because truly to enjoy bodily warmth, some small
part of you must be cold, for there is no quality in this world that is not
what it is merely by contrast. Nothing exists in itself. If you flatter
yourself that you are all over comfortable, and have been so a long time, then
you cannot be said to be comfortable any more. But if, like Queequeg and me in
the bed, the tip of your nose or the crown of your head be slightly chilled,
why then, indeed, in the general consciousness you feel most delightfully and
unmistakably warm. For this reason a sleeping apartment should never be
furnished with a fire, which is one of the luxurious discomforts of the rich.
For the height of this sort of deliciousness is to have nothing but the blanket
between you and your snugness and the cold of the outer air. Then there you lie
like the one warm spark in the heart of an arctic crystal.
We
had been sitting in this crouching manner for some time, when all at once I
thought I would open my eyes; for when between sheets, whether by day or by
night, and whether asleep or awake, I have a way of always keeping my eyes
shut, in order the more to concentrate the snugness of being in bed. Because no
man can ever feel his own identity aright except his eyes be closed; as if darkness
were indeed the proper element of our essences, though light be more congenial
to our clayey part. Upon opening my eyes then, and coming out of my own
pleasant and self-created darkness into the imposed and coarse outer gloom of
the unilluminated twelve-o'clock-at-night, I experienced a disagreeable
revulsion. Nor did I at all object to the hint from Queequeg that perhaps it
were best to strike a light, seeing that we were so wide awake; and besides he
felt a strong desire to have a few quiet puffs from his Tomahawk. Be it said,
that though I had felt such a strong repugnance to his smoking in the bed the
night before, yet see how elastic our stiff prejudices grow when love once
comes to bend them. For now I liked nothing better than to have Queequeg smoking
by me, even in bed, because he seemed to be full of such serene household joy
then. I no more felt unduly concerned for the landlord's policy of insurance. I
was only alive to the condensed confidential comfortableness of sharing a pipe
and a blanket with a real friend. With our shaggy jackets drawn about our
shoulders, we now passed the Tomahawk from one to the other, till slowly there
grew over us a blue hanging tester of smoke, illuminated by the flame of the
new-lit lamp.
Whether
it was that this undulating tester rolled the savage away to far distant
scenes, I know not, but he now spoke of his native island; and, eager to hear
his history, I begged him to go on and tell it. He gladly complied. Though at
the time I but ill comprehended not a few of his words, yet subsequent
disclosures, when I had become more familiar with his broken phraseology, now
enable me to present the whole story such as it may prove in the mere skeleton
I give.
CHAPTER
12. Biographical.
Queequeg
was a native of Rokovoko, an island far away to the West and South. It is not
down in any map; true places never are.
When
a new-hatched savage running wild about his native woodlands in a grass clout,
followed by the nibbling goats, as if he were a green sapling; even then, in
Queequeg's ambitious soul, lurked a strong desire to see something more of
Christendom than a specimen whaler or two. His father was a High Chief, a King;
his uncle a High Priest; and on the maternal side he boasted aunts who were the
wives of unconquerable warriors. There was excellent blood in his veins—royal
stuff; though sadly vitiated, I fear, by the cannibal propensity he nourished
in his untutored youth.
A
Sag Harbor ship visited his father's bay, and Queequeg sought a passage to
Christian lands. But the ship, having her full complement of seamen, spurned
his suit; and not all the King his father's influence could prevail. But
Queequeg vowed a vow. Alone in his canoe, he paddled off to a distant strait,
which he knew the ship must pass through when she quitted the island. On one
side was a coral reef; on the other a low tongue of land, covered with mangrove
thickets that grew out into the water. Hiding his canoe, still afloat, among
these thickets, with its prow seaward, he sat down in the stern, paddle low in
hand; and when the ship was gliding by, like a flash he darted out; gained her
side; with one backward dash of his foot capsized and sank his canoe; climbed
up the chains; and throwing himself at full length upon the deck, grappled a
ring-bolt there, and swore not to let it go, though hacked in pieces.
In
vain the captain threatened to throw him overboard; suspended a cutlass over
his naked wrists; Queequeg was the son of a King, and Queequeg budged not.
Struck by his desperate dauntlessness, and his wild desire to visit
Christendom, the captain at last relented, and told him he might make himself
at home. But this fine young savage—this sea Prince of Wales, never saw the
Captain's cabin. They put him down among the sailors, and made a whaleman of
him. But like Czar Peter content to toil in the shipyards of foreign cities,
Queequeg disdained no seeming ignominy, if thereby he might happily gain the
power of enlightening his untutored countrymen. For at bottom—so he told me—he
was actuated by a profound desire to learn among the Christians, the arts
whereby to make his people still happier than they were; and more than that,
still better than they were. But, alas! the practices of whalemen soon
convinced him that even Christians could be both miserable and wicked;
infinitely more so, than all his father's heathens. Arrived at last in old Sag
Harbor; and seeing what the sailors did there; and then going on to Nantucket,
and seeing how they spent their wages in that place also, poor Queequeg gave it
up for lost. Thought he, it's a wicked world in all meridians; I'll die a
pagan.
And
thus an old idolator at heart, he yet lived among these Christians, wore their
clothes, and tried to talk their gibberish. Hence the queer ways about him,
though now some time from home.
By
hints, I asked him whether he did not propose going back, and having a
coronation; since he might now consider his father dead and gone, he being very
old and feeble at the last accounts. He answered no, not yet; and added that he
was fearful Christianity, or rather Christians, had unfitted him for ascending
the pure and undefiled throne of thirty pagan Kings before him. But by and by,
he said, he would return,—as soon as he felt himself baptized again. For the
nonce, however, he proposed to sail about, and sow his wild oats in all four
oceans. They had made a harpooneer of him, and that barbed iron was in lieu of
a sceptre now.
I
asked him what might be his immediate purpose, touching his future movements.
He answered, to go to sea again, in his old vocation. Upon this, I told him
that whaling was my own design, and informed him of my intention to sail out of
Nantucket, as being the most promising port for an adventurous whaleman to
embark from. He at once resolved to accompany me to that island, ship aboard
the same vessel, get into the same watch, the same boat, the same mess with me,
in short to share my every hap; with both my hands in his, boldly dip into the
Potluck of both worlds. To all this I joyously assented; for besides the
affection I now felt for Queequeg, he was an experienced harpooneer, and as
such, could not fail to be of great usefulness to one, who, like me, was wholly
ignorant of the mysteries of whaling, though well acquainted with the sea, as
known to merchant seamen.
His
story being ended with his pipe's last dying puff, Queequeg embraced me,
pressed his forehead against mine, and blowing out the light, we rolled over
from each other, this way and that, and very soon were sleeping.
CHAPTER
13. Wheelbarrow.
Next
morning, Monday, after disposing of the embalmed head to a barber, for a block,
I settled my own and comrade's bill; using, however, my comrade's money. The
grinning landlord, as well as the boarders, seemed amazingly tickled at the
sudden friendship which had sprung up between me and Queequeg—especially as
Peter Coffin's cock and bull stories about him had previously so much alarmed
me concerning the very person whom I now companied with.
We
borrowed a wheelbarrow, and embarking our things, including my own poor
carpet-bag, and Queequeg's canvas sack and hammock, away we went down to “the
Moss,” the little Nantucket packet schooner moored at the wharf. As we were
going along the people stared; not at Queequeg so much—for they were used to
seeing cannibals like him in their streets,—but at seeing him and me upon such
confidential terms. But we heeded them not, going along wheeling the barrow by
turns, and Queequeg now and then stopping to adjust the sheath on his harpoon
barbs. I asked him why he carried such a troublesome thing with him ashore, and
whether all whaling ships did not find their own harpoons. To this, in
substance, he replied, that though what I hinted was true enough, yet he had a
particular affection for his own harpoon, because it was of assured stuff, well
tried in many a mortal combat, and deeply intimate with the hearts of whales.
In short, like many inland reapers and mowers, who go into the farmers' meadows
armed with their own scythes—though in no wise obliged to furnish them—even so,
Queequeg, for his own private reasons, preferred his own harpoon.
Shifting
the barrow from my hand to his, he told me a funny story about the first
wheelbarrow he had ever seen. It was in Sag Harbor. The owners of his ship, it
seems, had lent him one, in which to carry his heavy chest to his boarding
house. Not to seem ignorant about the thing—though in truth he was entirely so,
concerning the precise way in which to manage the barrow—Queequeg puts his
chest upon it; lashes it fast; and then shoulders the barrow and marches up the
wharf. “Why,” said I, “Queequeg, you might have known better than that, one
would think. Didn't the people laugh?”
Upon
this, he told me another story. The people of his island of Rokovoko, it seems,
at their wedding feasts express the fragrant water of young cocoanuts into a
large stained calabash like a punchbowl; and this punchbowl always forms the
great central ornament on the braided mat where the feast is held. Now a
certain grand merchant ship once touched at Rokovoko, and its commander—from
all accounts, a very stately punctilious gentleman, at least for a sea
captain—this commander was invited to the wedding feast of Queequeg's sister, a
pretty young princess just turned of ten. Well; when all the wedding guests
were assembled at the bride's bamboo cottage, this Captain marches in, and
being assigned the post of honor, placed himself over against the punchbowl,
and between the High Priest and his majesty the King, Queequeg's father. Grace
being said,—for those people have their grace as well as we—though Queequeg
told me that unlike us, who at such times look downwards to our platters, they,
on the contrary, copying the ducks, glance upwards to the great Giver of all
feasts—Grace, I say, being said, the High Priest opens the banquet by the
immemorial ceremony of the island; that is, dipping his consecrated and
consecrating fingers into the bowl before the blessed beverage circulates.
Seeing himself placed next the Priest, and noting the ceremony, and thinking
himself—being Captain of a ship—as having plain precedence over a mere island
King, especially in the King's own house—the Captain coolly proceeds to wash
his hands in the punchbowl;—taking it I suppose for a huge finger-glass. “Now,”
said Queequeg, “what you tink now?—Didn't our people laugh?”
At
last, passage paid, and luggage safe, we stood on board the schooner. Hoisting
sail, it glided down the Acushnet river. On one side, New Bedford rose in
terraces of streets, their ice-covered trees all glittering in the clear, cold
air. Huge hills and mountains of casks on casks were piled upon her wharves,
and side by side the world-wandering whale ships lay silent and safely moored
at last; while from others came a sound of carpenters and coopers, with blended
noises of fires and forges to melt the pitch, all betokening that new cruises
were on the start; that one most perilous and long voyage ended, only begins a
second; and a second ended, only begins a third, and so on, for ever and for
aye. Such is the endlessness, yea, the intolerableness of all earthly effort.
Gaining
the more open water, the bracing breeze waxed fresh; the little Moss tossed the
quick foam from her bows, as a young colt his snortings. How I snuffed that
Tartar air!—how I spurned that turnpike earth!—that common highway all over
dented with the marks of slavish heels and hoofs; and turned me to admire the
magnanimity of the sea which will permit no records.
At
the same foam-fountain, Queequeg seemed to drink and reel with me. His dusky
nostrils swelled apart; he showed his filed and pointed teeth. On, on we flew;
and our offing gained, the Moss did homage to the blast; ducked and dived her
bows as a slave before the Sultan. Sideways leaning, we sideways darted; every
ropeyarn tingling like a wire; the two tall masts buckling like Indian canes in
land tornadoes. So full of this reeling scene were we, as we stood by the
plunging bowsprit, that for some time we did not notice the jeering glances of
the passengers, a lubber-like assembly, who marvelled that two fellow beings
should be so companionable; as though a white man were anything more dignified
than a whitewashed negro. But there were some boobies and bumpkins there, who,
by their intense greenness, must have come from the heart and centre of all
verdure. Queequeg caught one of these young saplings mimicking him behind his
back. I thought the bumpkin's hour of doom was come. Dropping his harpoon, the
brawny savage caught him in his arms, and by an almost miraculous dexterity and
strength, sent him high up bodily into the air; then slightly tapping his stern
in mid-somerset, the fellow landed with bursting lungs upon his feet, while
Queequeg, turning his back upon him, lighted his tomahawk pipe and passed it to
me for a puff.
“Capting!
Capting!” yelled the bumpkin, running towards that officer; “Capting, Capting,
here's the devil.”
“Hallo,
you sir,” cried the Captain, a gaunt rib of the sea, stalking up to Queequeg,
“what in thunder do you mean by that? Don't you know you might have killed that
chap?”
“What
him say?” said Queequeg, as he mildly turned to me.
“He
say,” said I, “that you came near kill-e that man there,” pointing to the still
shivering greenhorn.
“Kill-e,”
cried Queequeg, twisting his tattooed face into an unearthly expression of
disdain, “ah! him bevy small-e fish-e; Queequeg no kill-e so small-e fish-e;
Queequeg kill-e big whale!”
“Look
you,” roared the Captain, “I'll kill-e you, you cannibal, if you try any more
of your tricks aboard here; so mind your eye.”
But
it so happened just then, that it was high time for the Captain to mind his own
eye. The prodigious strain upon the main-sail had parted the weather-sheet, and
the tremendous boom was now flying from side to side, completely sweeping the
entire after part of the deck. The poor fellow whom Queequeg had handled so
roughly, was swept overboard; all hands were in a panic; and to attempt
snatching at the boom to stay it, seemed madness. It flew from right to left,
and back again, almost in one ticking of a watch, and every instant seemed on
the point of snapping into splinters. Nothing was done, and nothing seemed
capable of being done; those on deck rushed towards the bows, and stood eyeing
the boom as if it were the lower jaw of an exasperated whale. In the midst of
this consternation, Queequeg dropped deftly to his knees, and crawling under
the path of the boom, whipped hold of a rope, secured one end to the bulwarks,
and then flinging the other like a lasso, caught it round the boom as it swept
over his head, and at the next jerk, the spar was that way trapped, and all was
safe. The schooner was run into the wind, and while the hands were clearing
away the stern boat, Queequeg, stripped to the waist, darted from the side with
a long living arc of a leap. For three minutes or more he was seen swimming
like a dog, throwing his long arms straight out before him, and by turns
revealing his brawny shoulders through the freezing foam. I looked at the grand
and glorious fellow, but saw no one to be saved. The greenhorn had gone down.
Shooting himself perpendicularly from the water, Queequeg, now took an
instant's glance around him, and seeming to see just how matters were, dived
down and disappeared. A few minutes more, and he rose again, one arm still
striking out, and with the other dragging a lifeless form. The boat soon picked
them up. The poor bumpkin was restored. All hands voted Queequeg a noble trump;
the captain begged his pardon. From that hour I clove to Queequeg like a
barnacle; yea, till poor Queequeg took his last long dive.
Was
there ever such unconsciousness? He did not seem to think that he at all
deserved a medal from the Humane and Magnanimous Societies. He only asked for
water—fresh water—something to wipe the brine off; that done, he put on dry
clothes, lighted his pipe, and leaning against the bulwarks, and mildly eyeing
those around him, seemed to be saying to himself—“It's a mutual, joint-stock
world, in all meridians. We cannibals must help these Christians.”
CHAPTER
14. Nantucket.
Nothing
more happened on the passage worthy the mentioning; so, after a fine run, we
safely arrived in Nantucket.
Nantucket!
Take out your map and look at it. See what a real corner of the world it
occupies; how it stands there, away off shore, more lonely than the Eddystone
lighthouse. Look at it—a mere hillock, and elbow of sand; all beach, without a
background. There is more sand there than you would use in twenty years as a
substitute for blotting paper. Some gamesome wights will tell you that they
have to plant weeds there, they don't grow naturally; that they import Canada
thistles; that they have to send beyond seas for a spile to stop a leak in an
oil cask; that pieces of wood in Nantucket are carried about like bits of the
true cross in Rome; that people there plant toadstools before their houses, to
get under the shade in summer time; that one blade of grass makes an oasis,
three blades in a day's walk a prairie; that they wear quicksand shoes,
something like Laplander snow-shoes; that they are so shut up, belted about,
every way inclosed, surrounded, and made an utter island of by the ocean, that
to their very chairs and tables small clams will sometimes be found adhering,
as to the backs of sea turtles. But these extravaganzas only show that
Nantucket is no Illinois.
Look
now at the wondrous traditional story of how this island was settled by the
red-men. Thus goes the legend. In olden times an eagle swooped down upon the
New England coast, and carried off an infant Indian in his talons. With loud
lament the parents saw their child borne out of sight over the wide waters.
They resolved to follow in the same direction. Setting out in their canoes,
after a perilous passage they discovered the island, and there they found an
empty ivory casket,—the poor little Indian's skeleton.
What
wonder, then, that these Nantucketers, born on a beach, should take to the sea
for a livelihood! They first caught crabs and quohogs in the sand; grown
bolder, they waded out with nets for mackerel; more experienced, they pushed
off in boats and captured cod; and at last, launching a navy of great ships on
the sea, explored this watery world; put an incessant belt of circumnavigations
round it; peeped in at Behring's Straits; and in all seasons and all oceans
declared everlasting war with the mightiest animated mass that has survived the
flood; most monstrous and most mountainous! That Himmalehan, salt-sea Mastodon,
clothed with such portentousness of unconscious power, that his very panics are
more to be dreaded than his most fearless and malicious assaults!
And
thus have these naked Nantucketers, these sea hermits, issuing from their
ant-hill in the sea, overrun and conquered the watery world like so many
Alexanders; parcelling out among them the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian oceans,
as the three pirate powers did Poland. Let America add Mexico to Texas, and
pile Cuba upon Canada; let the English overswarm all India, and hang out their
blazing banner from the sun; two thirds of this terraqueous globe are the
Nantucketer's. For the sea is his; he owns it, as Emperors own empires; other
seamen having but a right of way through it. Merchant ships are but extension
bridges; armed ones but floating forts; even pirates and privateers, though
following the sea as highwaymen the road, they but plunder other ships, other
fragments of the land like themselves, without seeking to draw their living
from the bottomless deep itself. The Nantucketer, he alone resides and riots on
the sea; he alone, in Bible language, goes down to it in ships; to and fro
ploughing it as his own special plantation. There is his home; there lies his
business, which a Noah's flood would not interrupt, though it overwhelmed all
the millions in China. He lives on the sea, as prairie cocks in the prairie; he
hides among the waves, he climbs them as chamois hunters climb the Alps. For
years he knows not the land; so that when he comes to it at last, it smells
like another world, more strangely than the moon would to an Earthsman. With
the landless gull, that at sunset folds her wings and is rocked to sleep
between billows; so at nightfall, the Nantucketer, out of sight of land, furls
his sails, and lays him to his rest, while under his very pillow rush herds of
walruses and whales.
CHAPTER
15. Chowder.
It
was quite late in the evening when the little Moss came snugly to anchor, and
Queequeg and I went ashore; so we could attend to no business that day, at
least none but a supper and a bed. The landlord of the Spouter-Inn had
recommended us to his cousin Hosea Hussey of the Try Pots, whom he asserted to
be the proprietor of one of the best kept hotels in all Nantucket, and moreover
he had assured us that Cousin Hosea, as he called him, was famous for his
chowders. In short, he plainly hinted that we could not possibly do better than
try pot-luck at the Try Pots. But the directions he had given us about keeping
a yellow warehouse on our starboard hand till we opened a white church to the
larboard, and then keeping that on the larboard hand till we made a corner
three points to the starboard, and that done, then ask the first man we met
where the place was: these crooked directions of his very much puzzled us at
first, especially as, at the outset, Queequeg insisted that the yellow
warehouse—our first point of departure—must be left on the larboard hand,
whereas I had understood Peter Coffin to say it was on the starboard. However,
by dint of beating about a little in the dark, and now and then knocking up a
peaceable inhabitant to inquire the way, we at last came to something which
there was no mistaking.
Two
enormous wooden pots painted black, and suspended by asses' ears, swung from
the cross-trees of an old top-mast, planted in front of an old doorway. The
horns of the cross-trees were sawed off on the other side, so that this old
top-mast looked not a little like a gallows. Perhaps I was over sensitive to
such impressions at the time, but I could not help staring at this gallows with
a vague misgiving. A sort of crick was in my neck as I gazed up to the two
remaining horns; yes, two of them, one for Queequeg, and one for me. It's
ominous, thinks I. A Coffin my Innkeeper upon landing in my first whaling port;
tombstones staring at me in the whalemen's chapel; and here a gallows! and a
pair of prodigious black pots too! Are these last throwing out oblique hints
touching Tophet?
I
was called from these reflections by the sight of a freckled woman with yellow
hair and a yellow gown, standing in the porch of the inn, under a dull red lamp
swinging there, that looked much like an injured eye, and carrying on a brisk
scolding with a man in a purple woollen shirt.
“Get
along with ye,” said she to the man, “or I'll be combing ye!”
“Come
on, Queequeg,” said I, “all right. There's Mrs. Hussey.”
And
so it turned out; Mr. Hosea Hussey being from home, but leaving Mrs. Hussey
entirely competent to attend to all his affairs. Upon making known our desires
for a supper and a bed, Mrs. Hussey, postponing further scolding for the
present, ushered us into a little room, and seating us at a table spread with
the relics of a recently concluded repast, turned round to us and said—“Clam or
Cod?”
“What's
that about Cods, ma'am?” said I, with much politeness.
“Clam
or Cod?” she repeated.
“A
clam for supper? a cold clam; is that what you mean, Mrs. Hussey?” says I, “but
that's a rather cold and clammy reception in the winter time, ain't it, Mrs.
Hussey?”
But
being in a great hurry to resume scolding the man in the purple Shirt, who was
waiting for it in the entry, and seeming to hear nothing but the word “clam,”
Mrs. Hussey hurried towards an open door leading to the kitchen, and bawling
out “clam for two,” disappeared.
“Queequeg,”
said I, “do you think that we can make out a supper for us both on one clam?”
However,
a warm savory steam from the kitchen served to belie the apparently cheerless
prospect before us. But when that smoking chowder came in, the mystery was
delightfully explained. Oh, sweet friends! hearken to me. It was made of small
juicy clams, scarcely bigger than hazel nuts, mixed with pounded ship biscuit,
and salted pork cut up into little flakes; the whole enriched with butter, and
plentifully seasoned with pepper and salt. Our appetites being sharpened by the
frosty voyage, and in particular, Queequeg seeing his favourite fishing food
before him, and the chowder being surpassingly excellent, we despatched it with
great expedition: when leaning back a moment and bethinking me of Mrs. Hussey's
clam and cod announcement, I thought I would try a little experiment. Stepping
to the kitchen door, I uttered the word “cod” with great emphasis, and resumed
my seat. In a few moments the savoury steam came forth again, but with a
different flavor, and in good time a fine cod-chowder was placed before us.
We
resumed business; and while plying our spoons in the bowl, thinks I to myself,
I wonder now if this here has any effect on the head? What's that stultifying
saying about chowder-headed people? “But look, Queequeg, ain't that a live eel
in your bowl? Where's your harpoon?”
Fishiest
of all fishy places was the Try Pots, which well deserved its name; for the
pots there were always boiling chowders. Chowder for breakfast, and chowder for
dinner, and chowder for supper, till you began to look for fish-bones coming
through your clothes. The area before the house was paved with clam-shells.
Mrs. Hussey wore a polished necklace of codfish vertebra; and Hosea Hussey had
his account books bound in superior old shark-skin. There was a fishy flavor to
the milk, too, which I could not at all account for, till one morning happening
to take a stroll along the beach among some fishermen's boats, I saw Hosea's
brindled cow feeding on fish remnants, and marching along the sand with each
foot in a cod's decapitated head, looking very slip-shod, I assure ye.
Supper
concluded, we received a lamp, and directions from Mrs. Hussey concerning the
nearest way to bed; but, as Queequeg was about to precede me up the stairs, the
lady reached forth her arm, and demanded his harpoon; she allowed no harpoon in
her chambers. “Why not?” said I; “every true whaleman sleeps with his
harpoon—but why not?” “Because it's dangerous,” says she. “Ever since young
Stiggs coming from that unfort'nt v'y'ge of his, when he was gone four years
and a half, with only three barrels of ile, was found dead in my first floor
back, with his harpoon in his side; ever since then I allow no boarders to take
sich dangerous weepons in their rooms at night. So, Mr. Queequeg” (for she had
learned his name), “I will just take this here iron, and keep it for you till
morning. But the chowder; clam or cod to-morrow for breakfast, men?”
“Both,”
says I; “and let's have a couple of smoked herring by way of variety.”
CHAPTER
16. The Ship.
In
bed we concocted our plans for the morrow. But to my surprise and no small
concern, Queequeg now gave me to understand, that he had been diligently
consulting Yojo—the name of his black little god—and Yojo had told him two or
three times over, and strongly insisted upon it everyway, that instead of our
going together among the whaling-fleet in harbor, and in concert selecting our
craft; instead of this, I say, Yojo earnestly enjoined that the selection of
the ship should rest wholly with me, inasmuch as Yojo purposed befriending us;
and, in order to do so, had already pitched upon a vessel, which, if left to
myself, I, Ishmael, should infallibly light upon, for all the world as though
it had turned out by chance; and in that vessel I must immediately ship myself,
for the present irrespective of Queequeg.
I
have forgotten to mention that, in many things, Queequeg placed great
confidence in the excellence of Yojo's judgment and surprising forecast of
things; and cherished Yojo with considerable esteem, as a rather good sort of
god, who perhaps meant well enough upon the whole, but in all cases did not
succeed in his benevolent designs.
Now,
this plan of Queequeg's, or rather Yojo's, touching the selection of our craft;
I did not like that plan at all. I had not a little relied upon Queequeg's
sagacity to point out the whaler best fitted to carry us and our fortunes
securely. But as all my remonstrances produced no effect upon Queequeg, I was
obliged to acquiesce; and accordingly prepared to set about this business with
a determined rushing sort of energy and vigor, that should quickly settle that
trifling little affair. Next morning early, leaving Queequeg shut up with Yojo
in our little bedroom—for it seemed that it was some sort of Lent or Ramadan,
or day of fasting, humiliation, and prayer with Queequeg and Yojo that day; how
it was I never could find out, for, though I applied myself to it several
times, I never could master his liturgies and XXXIX Articles—leaving Queequeg,
then, fasting on his tomahawk pipe, and Yojo warming himself at his sacrificial
fire of shavings, I sallied out among the shipping. After much prolonged
sauntering and many random inquiries, I learnt that there were three ships up
for three-years' voyages—The Devil-dam, the Tit-bit, and the Pequod. Devil-Dam,
I do not know the origin of; Tit-bit is obvious; Pequod, you will no doubt
remember, was the name of a celebrated tribe of Massachusetts Indians; now
extinct as the ancient Medes. I peered and pryed about the Devil-dam; from her,
hopped over to the Tit-bit; and finally, going on board the Pequod, looked
around her for a moment, and then decided that this was the very ship for us.
You
may have seen many a quaint craft in your day, for aught I know;—square-toed
luggers; mountainous Japanese junks; butter-box galliots, and what not; but
take my word for it, you never saw such a rare old craft as this same rare old
Pequod. She was a ship of the old school, rather small if anything; with an
old-fashioned claw-footed look about her. Long seasoned and weather-stained in
the typhoons and calms of all four oceans, her old hull's complexion was
darkened like a French grenadier's, who has alike fought in Egypt and Siberia.
Her venerable bows looked bearded. Her masts—cut somewhere on the coast of
Japan, where her original ones were lost overboard in a gale—her masts stood
stiffly up like the spines of the three old kings of Cologne. Her ancient decks
were worn and wrinkled, like the pilgrim-worshipped flag-stone in Canterbury
Cathedral where Becket bled. But to all these her old antiquities, were added
new and marvellous features, pertaining to the wild business that for more than
half a century she had followed. Old Captain Peleg, many years her chief-mate,
before he commanded another vessel of his own, and now a retired seaman, and
one of the principal owners of the Pequod,—this old Peleg, during the term of
his chief-mateship, had built upon her original grotesqueness, and inlaid it,
all over, with a quaintness both of material and device, unmatched by anything
except it be Thorkill-Hake's carved buckler or bedstead. She was apparelled
like any barbaric Ethiopian emperor, his neck heavy with pendants of polished
ivory. She was a thing of trophies. A cannibal of a craft, tricking herself
forth in the chased bones of her enemies. All round, her unpanelled, open
bulwarks were garnished like one continuous jaw, with the long sharp teeth of
the sperm whale, inserted there for pins, to fasten her old hempen thews and
tendons to. Those thews ran not through base blocks of land wood, but deftly
travelled over sheaves of sea-ivory. Scorning a turnstile wheel at her reverend
helm, she sported there a tiller; and that tiller was in one mass, curiously
carved from the long narrow lower jaw of her hereditary foe. The helmsman who
steered by that tiller in a tempest, felt like the Tartar, when he holds back
his fiery steed by clutching its jaw. A noble craft, but somehow a most
melancholy! All noble things are touched with that.
Now
when I looked about the quarter-deck, for some one having authority, in order
to propose myself as a candidate for the voyage, at first I saw nobody; but I
could not well overlook a strange sort of tent, or rather wigwam, pitched a
little behind the main-mast. It seemed only a temporary erection used in port.
It was of a conical shape, some ten feet high; consisting of the long, huge
slabs of limber black bone taken from the middle and highest part of the jaws
of the right-whale. Planted with their broad ends on the deck, a circle of
these slabs laced together, mutually sloped towards each other, and at the apex
united in a tufted point, where the loose hairy fibres waved to and fro like
the top-knot on some old Pottowottamie Sachem's head. A triangular opening
faced towards the bows of the ship, so that the insider commanded a complete
view forward.
And
half concealed in this queer tenement, I at length found one who by his aspect
seemed to have authority; and who, it being noon, and the ship's work
suspended, was now enjoying respite from the burden of command. He was seated
on an old-fashioned oaken chair, wriggling all over with curious carving; and
the bottom of which was formed of a stout interlacing of the same elastic stuff
of which the wigwam was constructed.
There
was nothing so very particular, perhaps, about the appearance of the elderly
man I saw; he was brown and brawny, like most old seamen, and heavily rolled up
in blue pilot-cloth, cut in the Quaker style; only there was a fine and almost
microscopic net-work of the minutest wrinkles interlacing round his eyes, which
must have arisen from his continual sailings in many hard gales, and always
looking to windward;—for this causes the muscles about the eyes to become
pursed together. Such eye-wrinkles are very effectual in a scowl.
“Is
this the Captain of the Pequod?” said I, advancing to the door of the tent.
“Supposing
it be the captain of the Pequod, what dost thou want of him?” he demanded.
“I
was thinking of shipping.”
“Thou
wast, wast thou? I see thou art no Nantucketer—ever been in a stove boat?”
“No,
Sir, I never have.”
“Dost
know nothing at all about whaling, I dare say—eh?”
“Nothing,
Sir; but I have no doubt I shall soon learn. I've been several voyages in the
merchant service, and I think that—”
“Merchant
service be damned. Talk not that lingo to me. Dost see that leg?—I'll take that
leg away from thy stern, if ever thou talkest of the marchant service to me
again. Marchant service indeed! I suppose now ye feel considerable proud of
having served in those marchant ships. But flukes! man, what makes thee want to
go a whaling, eh?—it looks a little suspicious, don't it, eh?—Hast not been a
pirate, hast thou?—Didst not rob thy last Captain, didst thou?—Dost not think
of murdering the officers when thou gettest to sea?”
I
protested my innocence of these things. I saw that under the mask of these half
humorous innuendoes, this old seaman, as an insulated Quakerish Nantucketer,
was full of his insular prejudices, and rather distrustful of all aliens, unless
they hailed from Cape Cod or the Vineyard.
“But
what takes thee a-whaling? I want to know that before I think of shipping ye.”
“Well,
sir, I want to see what whaling is. I want to see the world.”
“Want
to see what whaling is, eh? Have ye clapped eye on Captain Ahab?”
“Who
is Captain Ahab, sir?”
“Aye,
aye, I thought so. Captain Ahab is the Captain of this ship.”
“I
am mistaken then. I thought I was speaking to the Captain himself.”
“Thou
art speaking to Captain Peleg—that's who ye are speaking to, young man. It
belongs to me and Captain Bildad to see the Pequod fitted out for the voyage,
and supplied with all her needs, including crew. We are part owners and agents.
But as I was going to say, if thou wantest to know what whaling is, as thou
tellest ye do, I can put ye in a way of finding it out before ye bind yourself
to it, past backing out. Clap eye on Captain Ahab, young man, and thou wilt
find that he has only one leg.”
“What
do you mean, sir? Was the other one lost by a whale?”
“Lost
by a whale! Young man, come nearer to me: it was devoured, chewed up, crunched
by the monstrousest parmacetty that ever chipped a boat!—ah, ah!”
I
was a little alarmed by his energy, perhaps also a little touched at the hearty
grief in his concluding exclamation, but said as calmly as I could, “What you
say is no doubt true enough, sir; but how could I know there was any peculiar
ferocity in that particular whale, though indeed I might have inferred as much
from the simple fact of the accident.”
“Look
ye now, young man, thy lungs are a sort of soft, d'ye see; thou dost not talk
shark a bit. Sure, ye've been to sea before now; sure of that?”
“Sir,”
said I, “I thought I told you that I had been four voyages in the merchant—”
“Hard
down out of that! Mind what I said about the marchant service—don't aggravate
me—I won't have it. But let us understand each other. I have given thee a hint
about what whaling is; do ye yet feel inclined for it?”
“I
do, sir.”
“Very
good. Now, art thou the man to pitch a harpoon down a live whale's throat, and
then jump after it? Answer, quick!”
“I
am, sir, if it should be positively indispensable to do so; not to be got rid
of, that is; which I don't take to be the fact.”
“Good
again. Now then, thou not only wantest to go a-whaling, to find out by
experience what whaling is, but ye also want to go in order to see the world?
Was not that what ye said? I thought so. Well then, just step forward there,
and take a peep over the weather-bow, and then back to me and tell me what ye
see there.”
For
a moment I stood a little puzzled by this curious request, not knowing exactly
how to take it, whether humorously or in earnest. But concentrating all his
crow's feet into one scowl, Captain Peleg started me on the errand.
Going
forward and glancing over the weather bow, I perceived that the ship swinging
to her anchor with the flood-tide, was now obliquely pointing towards the open
ocean. The prospect was unlimited, but exceedingly monotonous and forbidding;
not the slightest variety that I could see.
“Well,
what's the report?” said Peleg when I came back; “what did ye see?”
“Not
much,” I replied—“nothing but water; considerable horizon though, and there's a
squall coming up, I think.”
“Well,
what does thou think then of seeing the world? Do ye wish to go round Cape Horn
to see any more of it, eh? Can't ye see the world where you stand?”
I
was a little staggered, but go a-whaling I must, and I would; and the Pequod
was as good a ship as any—I thought the best—and all this I now repeated to
Peleg. Seeing me so determined, he expressed his willingness to ship me.
“And
thou mayest as well sign the papers right off,” he added—“come along with ye.”
And so saying, he led the way below deck into the cabin.
Seated
on the transom was what seemed to me a most uncommon and surprising figure. It
turned out to be Captain Bildad, who along with Captain Peleg was one of the
largest owners of the vessel; the other shares, as is sometimes the case in
these ports, being held by a crowd of old annuitants; widows, fatherless
children, and chancery wards; each owning about the value of a timber head, or
a foot of plank, or a nail or two in the ship. People in Nantucket invest their
money in whaling vessels, the same way that you do yours in approved state
stocks bringing in good interest.
Now,
Bildad, like Peleg, and indeed many other Nantucketers, was a Quaker, the
island having been originally settled by that sect; and to this day its
inhabitants in general retain in an uncommon measure the peculiarities of the
Quaker, only variously and anomalously modified by things altogether alien and
heterogeneous. For some of these same Quakers are the most sanguinary of all
sailors and whale-hunters. They are fighting Quakers; they are Quakers with a
vengeance.
So
that there are instances among them of men, who, named with Scripture names—a
singularly common fashion on the island—and in childhood naturally imbibing the
stately dramatic thee and thou of the Quaker idiom; still, from the audacious,
daring, and boundless adventure of their subsequent lives, strangely blend with
these unoutgrown peculiarities, a thousand bold dashes of character, not
unworthy a Scandinavian sea-king, or a poetical Pagan Roman. And when these
things unite in a man of greatly superior natural force, with a globular brain
and a ponderous heart; who has also by the stillness and seclusion of many long
night-watches in the remotest waters, and beneath constellations never seen
here at the north, been led to think untraditionally and independently;
receiving all nature's sweet or savage impressions fresh from her own virgin
voluntary and confiding breast, and thereby chiefly, but with some help from
accidental advantages, to learn a bold and nervous lofty language—that man
makes one in a whole nation's census—a mighty pageant creature, formed for
noble tragedies. Nor will it at all detract from him, dramatically regarded, if
either by birth or other circumstances, he have what seems a half wilful
overruling morbidness at the bottom of his nature. For all men tragically great
are made so through a certain morbidness. Be sure of this, O young ambition,
all mortal greatness is but disease. But, as yet we have not to do with such an
one, but with quite another; and still a man, who, if indeed peculiar, it only
results again from another phase of the Quaker, modified by individual
circumstances.
Like
Captain Peleg, Captain Bildad was a well-to-do, retired whaleman. But unlike
Captain Peleg—who cared not a rush for what are called serious things, and
indeed deemed those self-same serious things the veriest of all trifles—Captain
Bildad had not only been originally educated according to the strictest sect of
Nantucket Quakerism, but all his subsequent ocean life, and the sight of many
unclad, lovely island creatures, round the Horn—all that had not moved this
native born Quaker one single jot, had not so much as altered one angle of his
vest. Still, for all this immutableness, was there some lack of common
consistency about worthy Captain Bildad. Though refusing, from conscientious
scruples, to bear arms against land invaders, yet himself had illimitably
invaded the Atlantic and Pacific; and though a sworn foe to human bloodshed,
yet had he in his straight-bodied coat, spilled tuns upon tuns of leviathan
gore. How now in the contemplative evening of his days, the pious Bildad
reconciled these things in the reminiscence, I do not know; but it did not seem
to concern him much, and very probably he had long since come to the sage and
sensible conclusion that a man's religion is one thing, and this practical
world quite another. This world pays dividends. Rising from a little cabin-boy
in short clothes of the drabbest drab, to a harpooneer in a broad shad-bellied
waistcoat; from that becoming boat-header, chief-mate, and captain, and finally
a ship owner; Bildad, as I hinted before, had concluded his adventurous career
by wholly retiring from active life at the goodly age of sixty, and dedicating
his remaining days to the quiet receiving of his well-earned income.
Now,
Bildad, I am sorry to say, had the reputation of being an incorrigible old
hunks, and in his sea-going days, a bitter, hard task-master. They told me in
Nantucket, though it certainly seems a curious story, that when he sailed the
old Categut whaleman, his crew, upon arriving home, were mostly all carried
ashore to the hospital, sore exhausted and worn out. For a pious man,
especially for a Quaker, he was certainly rather hard-hearted, to say the
least. He never used to swear, though, at his men, they said; but somehow he
got an inordinate quantity of cruel, unmitigated hard work out of them. When
Bildad was a chief-mate, to have his drab-coloured eye intently looking at you,
made you feel completely nervous, till you could clutch something—a hammer or a
marling-spike, and go to work like mad, at something or other, never mind what.
Indolence and idleness perished before him. His own person was the exact
embodiment of his utilitarian character. On his long, gaunt body, he carried no
spare flesh, no superfluous beard, his chin having a soft, economical nap to
it, like the worn nap of his broad-brimmed hat.
Such,
then, was the person that I saw seated on the transom when I followed Captain
Peleg down into the cabin. The space between the decks was small; and there,
bolt-upright, sat old Bildad, who always sat so, and never leaned, and this to
save his coat tails. His broad-brim was placed beside him; his legs were
stiffly crossed; his drab vesture was buttoned up to his chin; and spectacles
on nose, he seemed absorbed in reading from a ponderous volume.
“Bildad,”
cried Captain Peleg, “at it again, Bildad, eh? Ye have been studying those
Scriptures, now, for the last thirty years, to my certain knowledge. How far ye
got, Bildad?”
As
if long habituated to such profane talk from his old shipmate, Bildad, without
noticing his present irreverence, quietly looked up, and seeing me, glanced
again inquiringly towards Peleg.
“He
says he's our man, Bildad,” said Peleg, “he wants to ship.”
“Dost
thee?” said Bildad, in a hollow tone, and turning round to me.
“I
dost,” said I unconsciously, he was so intense a Quaker.
“What
do ye think of him, Bildad?” said Peleg.
“He'll
do,” said Bildad, eyeing me, and then went on spelling away at his book in a
mumbling tone quite audible.
I
thought him the queerest old Quaker I ever saw, especially as Peleg, his friend
and old shipmate, seemed such a blusterer. But I said nothing, only looking
round me sharply. Peleg now threw open a chest, and drawing forth the ship's
articles, placed pen and ink before him, and seated himself at a little table.
I began to think it was high time to settle with myself at what terms I would
be willing to engage for the voyage. I was already aware that in the whaling
business they paid no wages; but all hands, including the captain, received
certain shares of the profits called lays, and that these lays were
proportioned to the degree of importance pertaining to the respective duties of
the ship's company. I was also aware that being a green hand at whaling, my own
lay would not be very large; but considering that I was used to the sea, could
steer a ship, splice a rope, and all that, I made no doubt that from all I had
heard I should be offered at least the 275th lay—that is, the 275th part of the
clear net proceeds of the voyage, whatever that might eventually amount to. And
though the 275th lay was what they call a rather long lay, yet it was better
than nothing; and if we had a lucky voyage, might pretty nearly pay for the
clothing I would wear out on it, not to speak of my three years' beef and
board, for which I would not have to pay one stiver.
It
might be thought that this was a poor way to accumulate a princely fortune—and
so it was, a very poor way indeed. But I am one of those that never take on
about princely fortunes, and am quite content if the world is ready to board
and lodge me, while I am putting up at this grim sign of the Thunder Cloud.
Upon the whole, I thought that the 275th lay would be about the fair thing, but
would not have been surprised had I been offered the 200th, considering I was
of a broad-shouldered make.
But
one thing, nevertheless, that made me a little distrustful about receiving a
generous share of the profits was this: Ashore, I had heard something of both
Captain Peleg and his unaccountable old crony Bildad; how that they being the
principal proprietors of the Pequod, therefore the other and more
inconsiderable and scattered owners, left nearly the whole management of the
ship's affairs to these two. And I did not know but what the stingy old Bildad
might have a mighty deal to say about shipping hands, especially as I now found
him on board the Pequod, quite at home there in the cabin, and reading his
Bible as if at his own fireside. Now while Peleg was vainly trying to mend a
pen with his jack-knife, old Bildad, to my no small surprise, considering that
he was such an interested party in these proceedings; Bildad never heeded us,
but went on mumbling to himself out of his book, “Lay not up for yourselves
treasures upon earth, where moth—”
“Well,
Captain Bildad,” interrupted Peleg, “what d'ye say, what lay shall we give this
young man?”
“Thou
knowest best,” was the sepulchral reply, “the seven hundred and seventy-seventh
wouldn't be too much, would it?—'where moth and rust do corrupt, but lay—'”
Lay,
indeed, thought I, and such a lay! the seven hundred and seventy-seventh! Well,
old Bildad, you are determined that I, for one, shall not lay up many lays here
below, where moth and rust do corrupt. It was an exceedingly long lay that,
indeed; and though from the magnitude of the figure it might at first deceive a
landsman, yet the slightest consideration will show that though seven hundred
and seventy-seven is a pretty large number, yet, when you come to make a teenth
of it, you will then see, I say, that the seven hundred and seventy-seventh
part of a farthing is a good deal less than seven hundred and seventy-seven
gold doubloons; and so I thought at the time.
“Why,
blast your eyes, Bildad,” cried Peleg, “thou dost not want to swindle this
young man! he must have more than that.”
“Seven
hundred and seventy-seventh,” again said Bildad, without lifting his eyes; and
then went on mumbling—“for where your treasure is, there will your heart be
also.”
“I
am going to put him down for the three hundredth,” said Peleg, “do ye hear
that, Bildad! The three hundredth lay, I say.”
Bildad
laid down his book, and turning solemnly towards him said, “Captain Peleg, thou
hast a generous heart; but thou must consider the duty thou owest to the other
owners of this ship—widows and orphans, many of them—and that if we too
abundantly reward the labors of this young man, we may be taking the bread from
those widows and those orphans. The seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay,
Captain Peleg.”
“Thou
Bildad!” roared Peleg, starting up and clattering about the cabin. “Blast ye,
Captain Bildad, if I had followed thy advice in these matters, I would afore
now had a conscience to lug about that would be heavy enough to founder the
largest ship that ever sailed round Cape Horn.”
“Captain
Peleg,” said Bildad steadily, “thy conscience may be drawing ten inches of
water, or ten fathoms, I can't tell; but as thou art still an impenitent man,
Captain Peleg, I greatly fear lest thy conscience be but a leaky one; and will
in the end sink thee foundering down to the fiery pit, Captain Peleg.”
“Fiery
pit! fiery pit! ye insult me, man; past all natural bearing, ye insult me. It's
an all-fired outrage to tell any human creature that he's bound to hell. Flukes
and flames! Bildad, say that again to me, and start my soul-bolts, but
I'll—I'll—yes, I'll swallow a live goat with all his hair and horns on. Out of
the cabin, ye canting, drab-coloured son of a wooden gun—a straight wake with
ye!”
As
he thundered out this he made a rush at Bildad, but with a marvellous oblique,
sliding celerity, Bildad for that time eluded him.
Alarmed
at this terrible outburst between the two principal and responsible owners of
the ship, and feeling half a mind to give up all idea of sailing in a vessel so
questionably owned and temporarily commanded, I stepped aside from the door to
give egress to Bildad, who, I made no doubt, was all eagerness to vanish from
before the awakened wrath of Peleg. But to my astonishment, he sat down again
on the transom very quietly, and seemed to have not the slightest intention of
withdrawing. He seemed quite used to impenitent Peleg and his ways. As for
Peleg, after letting off his rage as he had, there seemed no more left in him,
and he, too, sat down like a lamb, though he twitched a little as if still
nervously agitated. “Whew!” he whistled at last—“the squall's gone off to
leeward, I think. Bildad, thou used to be good at sharpening a lance, mend that
pen, will ye. My jack-knife here needs the grindstone. That's he; thank ye,
Bildad. Now then, my young man, Ishmael's thy name, didn't ye say? Well then,
down ye go here, Ishmael, for the three hundredth lay.”
“Captain
Peleg,” said I, “I have a friend with me who wants to ship too—shall I bring
him down to-morrow?”
“To
be sure,” said Peleg. “Fetch him along, and we'll look at him.”
“What
lay does he want?” groaned Bildad, glancing up from the book in which he had
again been burying himself.
“Oh!
never thee mind about that, Bildad,” said Peleg. “Has he ever whaled it any?”
turning to me.
“Killed
more whales than I can count, Captain Peleg.”
“Well,
bring him along then.”
And,
after signing the papers, off I went; nothing doubting but that I had done a
good morning's work, and that the Pequod was the identical ship that Yojo had
provided to carry Queequeg and me round the Cape.
But
I had not proceeded far, when I began to bethink me that the Captain with whom
I was to sail yet remained unseen by me; though, indeed, in many cases, a
whale-ship will be completely fitted out, and receive all her crew on board,
ere the captain makes himself visible by arriving to take command; for
sometimes these voyages are so prolonged, and the shore intervals at home so
exceedingly brief, that if the captain have a family, or any absorbing
concernment of that sort, he does not trouble himself much about his ship in
port, but leaves her to the owners till all is ready for sea. However, it is
always as well to have a look at him before irrevocably committing yourself
into his hands. Turning back I accosted Captain Peleg, inquiring where Captain
Ahab was to be found.
“And
what dost thou want of Captain Ahab? It's all right enough; thou art shipped.”
“Yes,
but I should like to see him.”
“But
I don't think thou wilt be able to at present. I don't know exactly what's the
matter with him; but he keeps close inside the house; a sort of sick, and yet
he don't look so. In fact, he ain't sick; but no, he isn't well either. Any
how, young man, he won't always see me, so I don't suppose he will thee. He's a
queer man, Captain Ahab—so some think—but a good one. Oh, thou'lt like him well
enough; no fear, no fear. He's a grand, ungodly, god-like man, Captain Ahab;
doesn't speak much; but, when he does speak, then you may well listen. Mark ye,
be forewarned; Ahab's above the common; Ahab's been in colleges, as well as
'mong the cannibals; been used to deeper wonders than the waves; fixed his
fiery lance in mightier, stranger foes than whales. His lance! aye, the keenest
and the surest that out of all our isle! Oh! he ain't Captain Bildad; no, and
he ain't Captain Peleg; he's Ahab, boy; and Ahab of old, thou knowest, was a
crowned king!”
“And
a very vile one. When that wicked king was slain, the dogs, did they not lick
his blood?”
“Come
hither to me—hither, hither,” said Peleg, with a significance in his eye that
almost startled me. “Look ye, lad; never say that on board the Pequod. Never
say it anywhere. Captain Ahab did not name himself. 'Twas a foolish, ignorant
whim of his crazy, widowed mother, who died when he was only a twelvemonth old.
And yet the old squaw Tistig, at Gayhead, said that the name would somehow
prove prophetic. And, perhaps, other fools like her may tell thee the same. I
wish to warn thee. It's a lie. I know Captain Ahab well; I've sailed with him
as mate years ago; I know what he is—a good man—not a pious, good man, like
Bildad, but a swearing good man—something like me—only there's a good deal more
of him. Aye, aye, I know that he was never very jolly; and I know that on the
passage home, he was a little out of his mind for a spell; but it was the sharp
shooting pains in his bleeding stump that brought that about, as any one might
see. I know, too, that ever since he lost his leg last voyage by that accursed
whale, he's been a kind of moody—desperate moody, and savage sometimes; but
that will all pass off. And once for all, let me tell thee and assure thee,
young man, it's better to sail with a moody good captain than a laughing bad
one. So good-bye to thee—and wrong not Captain Ahab, because he happens to have
a wicked name. Besides, my boy, he has a wife—not three voyages wedded—a sweet,
resigned girl. Think of that; by that sweet girl that old man has a child: hold
ye then there can be any utter, hopeless harm in Ahab? No, no, my lad;
stricken, blasted, if he be, Ahab has his humanities!”
As
I walked away, I was full of thoughtfulness; what had been incidentally
revealed to me of Captain Ahab, filled me with a certain wild vagueness of
painfulness concerning him. And somehow, at the time, I felt a sympathy and a
sorrow for him, but for I don't know what, unless it was the cruel loss of his
leg. And yet I also felt a strange awe of him; but that sort of awe, which I
cannot at all describe, was not exactly awe; I do not know what it was. But I
felt it; and it did not disincline me towards him; though I felt impatience at
what seemed like mystery in him, so imperfectly as he was known to me then.
However, my thoughts were at length carried in other directions, so that for
the present dark Ahab slipped my mind.
CHAPTER
17. The Ramadan.
As
Queequeg's Ramadan, or Fasting and Humiliation, was to continue all day, I did
not choose to disturb him till towards night-fall; for I cherish the greatest
respect towards everybody's religious obligations, never mind how comical, and
could not find it in my heart to undervalue even a congregation of ants
worshipping a toad-stool; or those other creatures in certain parts of our
earth, who with a degree of footmanism quite unprecedented in other planets,
bow down before the torso of a deceased landed proprietor merely on account of
the inordinate possessions yet owned and rented in his name.
I
say, we good Presbyterian Christians should be charitable in these things, and
not fancy ourselves so vastly superior to other mortals, pagans and what not,
because of their half-crazy conceits on these subjects. There was Queequeg,
now, certainly entertaining the most absurd notions about Yojo and his
Ramadan;—but what of that? Queequeg thought he knew what he was about, I
suppose; he seemed to be content; and there let him rest. All our arguing with
him would not avail; let him be, I say: and Heaven have mercy on us
all—Presbyterians and Pagans alike—for we are all somehow dreadfully cracked
about the head, and sadly need mending.
Towards
evening, when I felt assured that all his performances and rituals must be
over, I went up to his room and knocked at the door; but no answer. I tried to
open it, but it was fastened inside. “Queequeg,” said I softly through the
key-hole:—all silent. “I say, Queequeg! why don't you speak? It's I—Ishmael.”
But all remained still as before. I began to grow alarmed. I had allowed him
such abundant time; I thought he might have had an apoplectic fit. I looked
through the key-hole; but the door opening into an odd corner of the room, the
key-hole prospect was but a crooked and sinister one. I could only see part of
the foot-board of the bed and a line of the wall, but nothing more. I was
surprised to behold resting against the wall the wooden shaft of Queequeg's
harpoon, which the landlady the evening previous had taken from him, before our
mounting to the chamber. That's strange, thought I; but at any rate, since the
harpoon stands yonder, and he seldom or never goes abroad without it, therefore
he must be inside here, and no possible mistake.
“Queequeg!—Queequeg!”—all
still. Something must have happened. Apoplexy! I tried to burst open the door;
but it stubbornly resisted. Running down stairs, I quickly stated my suspicions
to the first person I met—the chamber-maid. “La! La!” she cried, “I thought
something must be the matter. I went to make the bed after breakfast, and the
door was locked; and not a mouse to be heard; and it's been just so silent ever
since. But I thought, may be, you had both gone off and locked your baggage in
for safe keeping. La! La, ma'am!—Mistress! murder! Mrs. Hussey! apoplexy!”—and
with these cries, she ran towards the kitchen, I following.
Mrs.
Hussey soon appeared, with a mustard-pot in one hand and a vinegar-cruet in the
other, having just broken away from the occupation of attending to the castors,
and scolding her little black boy meantime.
“Wood-house!”
cried I, “which way to it? Run for God's sake, and fetch something to pry open
the door—the axe!—the axe! he's had a stroke; depend upon it!”—and so saying I
was unmethodically rushing up stairs again empty-handed, when Mrs. Hussey
interposed the mustard-pot and vinegar-cruet, and the entire castor of her
countenance.
“What's
the matter with you, young man?”
“Get
the axe! For God's sake, run for the doctor, some one, while I pry it open!”
“Look
here,” said the landlady, quickly putting down the vinegar-cruet, so as to have
one hand free; “look here; are you talking about prying open any of my
doors?”—and with that she seized my arm. “What's the matter with you? What's
the matter with you, shipmate?”
In
as calm, but rapid a manner as possible, I gave her to understand the whole
case. Unconsciously clapping the vinegar-cruet to one side of her nose, she
ruminated for an instant; then exclaimed—“No! I haven't seen it since I put it
there.” Running to a little closet under the landing of the stairs, she glanced
in, and returning, told me that Queequeg's harpoon was missing. “He's killed
himself,” she cried. “It's unfort'nate Stiggs done over again—there goes
another counterpane—God pity his poor mother!—it will be the ruin of my house.
Has the poor lad a sister? Where's that girl?—there, Betty, go to Snarles the
Painter, and tell him to paint me a sign, with—“no suicides permitted here, and
no smoking in the parlor;”—might as well kill both birds at once. Kill? The
Lord be merciful to his ghost! What's that noise there? You, young man, avast
there!”
And
running up after me, she caught me as I was again trying to force open the
door.
“I
don't allow it; I won't have my premises spoiled. Go for the locksmith, there's
one about a mile from here. But avast!” putting her hand in her side-pocket,
“here's a key that'll fit, I guess; let's see.” And with that, she turned it in
the lock; but, alas! Queequeg's supplemental bolt remained unwithdrawn within.
“Have
to burst it open,” said I, and was running down the entry a little, for a good
start, when the landlady caught at me, again vowing I should not break down her
premises; but I tore from her, and with a sudden bodily rush dashed myself full
against the mark.
With
a prodigious noise the door flew open, and the knob slamming against the wall,
sent the plaster to the ceiling; and there, good heavens! there sat Queequeg,
altogether cool and self-collected; right in the middle of the room; squatting
on his hams, and holding Yojo on top of his head. He looked neither one way nor
the other way, but sat like a carved image with scarce a sign of active life.
“Queequeg,”
said I, going up to him, “Queequeg, what's the matter with you?”
“He
hain't been a sittin' so all day, has he?” said the landlady.
But
all we said, not a word could we drag out of him; I almost felt like pushing
him over, so as to change his position, for it was almost intolerable, it
seemed so painfully and unnaturally constrained; especially, as in all
probability he had been sitting so for upwards of eight or ten hours, going too
without his regular meals.
“Mrs.
Hussey,” said I, “he's alive at all events; so leave us, if you please, and I
will see to this strange affair myself.”
Closing
the door upon the landlady, I endeavored to prevail upon Queequeg to take a
chair; but in vain. There he sat; and all he could do—for all my polite arts
and blandishments—he would not move a peg, nor say a single word, nor even look
at me, nor notice my presence in the slightest way.
I
wonder, thought I, if this can possibly be a part of his Ramadan; do they fast
on their hams that way in his native island. It must be so; yes, it's part of
his creed, I suppose; well, then, let him rest; he'll get up sooner or later,
no doubt. It can't last for ever, thank God, and his Ramadan only comes once a
year; and I don't believe it's very punctual then.
I
went down to supper. After sitting a long time listening to the long stories of
some sailors who had just come from a plum-pudding voyage, as they called it
(that is, a short whaling-voyage in a schooner or brig, confined to the north
of the line, in the Atlantic Ocean only); after listening to these
plum-puddingers till nearly eleven o'clock, I went up stairs to go to bed,
feeling quite sure by this time Queequeg must certainly have brought his
Ramadan to a termination. But no; there he was just where I had left him; he
had not stirred an inch. I began to grow vexed with him; it seemed so downright
senseless and insane to be sitting there all day and half the night on his hams
in a cold room, holding a piece of wood on his head.
“For
heaven's sake, Queequeg, get up and shake yourself; get up and have some
supper. You'll starve; you'll kill yourself, Queequeg.” But not a word did he
reply.
Despairing
of him, therefore, I determined to go to bed and to sleep; and no doubt, before
a great while, he would follow me. But previous to turning in, I took my heavy
bearskin jacket, and threw it over him, as it promised to be a very cold night;
and he had nothing but his ordinary round jacket on. For some time, do all I
would, I could not get into the faintest doze. I had blown out the candle; and
the mere thought of Queequeg—not four feet off—sitting there in that uneasy
position, stark alone in the cold and dark; this made me really wretched. Think
of it; sleeping all night in the same room with a wide awake pagan on his hams
in this dreary, unaccountable Ramadan!
But
somehow I dropped off at last, and knew nothing more till break of day; when,
looking over the bedside, there squatted Queequeg, as if he had been screwed
down to the floor. But as soon as the first glimpse of sun entered the window,
up he got, with stiff and grating joints, but with a cheerful look; limped
towards me where I lay; pressed his forehead again against mine; and said his
Ramadan was over.
Now,
as I before hinted, I have no objection to any person's religion, be it what it
may, so long as that person does not kill or insult any other person, because
that other person don't believe it also. But when a man's religion becomes
really frantic; when it is a positive torment to him; and, in fine, makes this
earth of ours an uncomfortable inn to lodge in; then I think it high time to
take that individual aside and argue the point with him.
And
just so I now did with Queequeg. “Queequeg,” said I, “get into bed now, and lie
and listen to me.” I then went on, beginning with the rise and progress of the
primitive religions, and coming down to the various religions of the present
time, during which time I labored to show Queequeg that all these Lents,
Ramadans, and prolonged ham-squattings in cold, cheerless rooms were stark
nonsense; bad for the health; useless for the soul; opposed, in short, to the
obvious laws of Hygiene and common sense. I told him, too, that he being in
other things such an extremely sensible and sagacious savage, it pained me,
very badly pained me, to see him now so deplorably foolish about this
ridiculous Ramadan of his. Besides, argued I, fasting makes the body cave in; hence
the spirit caves in; and all thoughts born of a fast must necessarily be
half-starved. This is the reason why most dyspeptic religionists cherish such
melancholy notions about their hereafters. In one word, Queequeg, said I,
rather digressively; hell is an idea first born on an undigested
apple-dumpling; and since then perpetuated through the hereditary dyspepsias
nurtured by Ramadans.
I
then asked Queequeg whether he himself was ever troubled with dyspepsia;
expressing the idea very plainly, so that he could take it in. He said no; only
upon one memorable occasion. It was after a great feast given by his father the
king, on the gaining of a great battle wherein fifty of the enemy had been
killed by about two o'clock in the afternoon, and all cooked and eaten that
very evening.
“No
more, Queequeg,” said I, shuddering; “that will do;” for I knew the inferences
without his further hinting them. I had seen a sailor who had visited that very
island, and he told me that it was the custom, when a great battle had been
gained there, to barbecue all the slain in the yard or garden of the victor;
and then, one by one, they were placed in great wooden trenchers, and garnished
round like a pilau, with breadfruit and cocoanuts; and with some parsley in
their mouths, were sent round with the victor's compliments to all his friends,
just as though these presents were so many Christmas turkeys.
After
all, I do not think that my remarks about religion made much impression upon
Queequeg. Because, in the first place, he somehow seemed dull of hearing on
that important subject, unless considered from his own point of view; and, in
the second place, he did not more than one third understand me, couch my ideas
simply as I would; and, finally, he no doubt thought he knew a good deal more
about the true religion than I did. He looked at me with a sort of
condescending concern and compassion, as though he thought it a great pity that
such a sensible young man should be so hopelessly lost to evangelical pagan
piety.
At
last we rose and dressed; and Queequeg, taking a prodigiously hearty breakfast
of chowders of all sorts, so that the landlady should not make much profit by
reason of his Ramadan, we sallied out to board the Pequod, sauntering along,
and picking our teeth with halibut bones.
CHAPTER
18. His Mark.
As
we were walking down the end of the wharf towards the ship, Queequeg carrying
his harpoon, Captain Peleg in his gruff voice loudly hailed us from his wigwam,
saying he had not suspected my friend was a cannibal, and furthermore
announcing that he let no cannibals on board that craft, unless they previously
produced their papers.
“What
do you mean by that, Captain Peleg?” said I, now jumping on the bulwarks, and
leaving my comrade standing on the wharf.
“I
mean,” he replied, “he must show his papers.”
“Yes,”
said Captain Bildad in his hollow voice, sticking his head from behind Peleg's,
out of the wigwam. “He must show that he's converted. Son of darkness,” he
added, turning to Queequeg, “art thou at present in communion with any
Christian church?”
“Why,”
said I, “he's a member of the first Congregational Church.” Here be it said,
that many tattooed savages sailing in Nantucket ships at last come to be
converted into the churches.
“First
Congregational Church,” cried Bildad, “what! that worships in Deacon
Deuteronomy Coleman's meeting-house?” and so saying, taking out his spectacles,
he rubbed them with his great yellow bandana handkerchief, and putting them on
very carefully, came out of the wigwam, and leaning stiffly over the bulwarks,
took a good long look at Queequeg.
“How
long hath he been a member?” he then said, turning to me; “not very long, I
rather guess, young man.”
“No,”
said Peleg, “and he hasn't been baptized right either, or it would have washed
some of that devil's blue off his face.”
“Do
tell, now,” cried Bildad, “is this Philistine a regular member of Deacon
Deuteronomy's meeting? I never saw him going there, and I pass it every Lord's
day.”
“I
don't know anything about Deacon Deuteronomy or his meeting,” said I; “all I
know is, that Queequeg here is a born member of the First Congregational
Church. He is a deacon himself, Queequeg is.”
“Young
man,” said Bildad sternly, “thou art skylarking with me—explain thyself, thou
young Hittite. What church dost thee mean? answer me.”
Finding
myself thus hard pushed, I replied. “I mean, sir, the same ancient Catholic
Church to which you and I, and Captain Peleg there, and Queequeg here, and all
of us, and every mother's son and soul of us belong; the great and everlasting
First Congregation of this whole worshipping world; we all belong to that; only
some of us cherish some queer crotchets no ways touching the grand belief; in
that we all join hands.”
“Splice,
thou mean'st splice hands,” cried Peleg, drawing nearer. “Young man, you'd
better ship for a missionary, instead of a fore-mast hand; I never heard a
better sermon. Deacon Deuteronomy—why Father Mapple himself couldn't beat it,
and he's reckoned something. Come aboard, come aboard; never mind about the
papers. I say, tell Quohog there—what's that you call him? tell Quohog to step
along. By the great anchor, what a harpoon he's got there! looks like good
stuff that; and he handles it about right. I say, Quohog, or whatever your name
is, did you ever stand in the head of a whale-boat? did you ever strike a
fish?”
Without
saying a word, Queequeg, in his wild sort of way, jumped upon the bulwarks,
from thence into the bows of one of the whale-boats hanging to the side; and
then bracing his left knee, and poising his harpoon, cried out in some such way
as this:—
“Cap'ain,
you see him small drop tar on water dere? You see him? well, spose him one
whale eye, well, den!” and taking sharp aim at it, he darted the iron right
over old Bildad's broad brim, clean across the ship's decks, and struck the
glistening tar spot out of sight.
“Now,”
said Queequeg, quietly hauling in the line, “spos-ee him whale-e eye; why, dad whale
dead.”
“Quick,
Bildad,” said Peleg, his partner, who, aghast at the close vicinity of the
flying harpoon, had retreated towards the cabin gangway. “Quick, I say, you
Bildad, and get the ship's papers. We must have Hedgehog there, I mean Quohog,
in one of our boats. Look ye, Quohog, we'll give ye the ninetieth lay, and
that's more than ever was given a harpooneer yet out of Nantucket.”
So
down we went into the cabin, and to my great joy Queequeg was soon enrolled
among the same ship's company to which I myself belonged.
When
all preliminaries were over and Peleg had got everything ready for signing, he
turned to me and said, “I guess, Quohog there don't know how to write, does he?
I say, Quohog, blast ye! dost thou sign thy name or make thy mark?”
But
at this question, Queequeg, who had twice or thrice before taken part in
similar ceremonies, looked no ways abashed; but taking the offered pen, copied
upon the paper, in the proper place, an exact counterpart of a queer round
figure which was tattooed upon his arm; so that through Captain Peleg's
obstinate mistake touching his appellative, it stood something like this:—
Quohog.
his X mark.
Meanwhile
Captain Bildad sat earnestly and steadfastly eyeing Queequeg, and at last
rising solemnly and fumbling in the huge pockets of his broad-skirted drab
coat, took out a bundle of tracts, and selecting one entitled “The Latter Day
Coming; or No Time to Lose,” placed it in Queequeg's hands, and then grasping
them and the book with both his, looked earnestly into his eyes, and said, “Son
of darkness, I must do my duty by thee; I am part owner of this ship, and feel
concerned for the souls of all its crew; if thou still clingest to thy Pagan
ways, which I sadly fear, I beseech thee, remain not for aye a Belial bondsman.
Spurn the idol Bell, and the hideous dragon; turn from the wrath to come; mind
thine eye, I say; oh! goodness gracious! steer clear of the fiery pit!”
Something
of the salt sea yet lingered in old Bildad's language, heterogeneously mixed
with Scriptural and domestic phrases.
“Avast
there, avast there, Bildad, avast now spoiling our harpooneer,” cried Peleg.
“Pious harpooneers never make good voyagers—it takes the shark out of 'em; no
harpooneer is worth a straw who aint pretty sharkish. There was young Nat
Swaine, once the bravest boat-header out of all Nantucket and the Vineyard; he
joined the meeting, and never came to good. He got so frightened about his
plaguy soul, that he shrinked and sheered away from whales, for fear of
after-claps, in case he got stove and went to Davy Jones.”
“Peleg!
Peleg!” said Bildad, lifting his eyes and hands, “thou thyself, as I myself,
hast seen many a perilous time; thou knowest, Peleg, what it is to have the
fear of death; how, then, can'st thou prate in this ungodly guise. Thou beliest
thine own heart, Peleg. Tell me, when this same Pequod here had her three masts
overboard in that typhoon on Japan, that same voyage when thou went mate with
Captain Ahab, did'st thou not think of Death and the Judgment then?”
“Hear
him, hear him now,” cried Peleg, marching across the cabin, and thrusting his
hands far down into his pockets,—“hear him, all of ye. Think of that! When
every moment we thought the ship would sink! Death and the Judgment then? What?
With all three masts making such an everlasting thundering against the side;
and every sea breaking over us, fore and aft. Think of Death and the Judgment
then? No! no time to think about Death then. Life was what Captain Ahab and I
was thinking of; and how to save all hands—how to rig jury-masts—how to get
into the nearest port; that was what I was thinking of.”
Bildad
said no more, but buttoning up his coat, stalked on deck, where we followed
him. There he stood, very quietly overlooking some sailmakers who were mending
a top-sail in the waist. Now and then he stooped to pick up a patch, or save an
end of tarred twine, which otherwise might have been wasted.
CHAPTER
19. The Prophet.
“Shipmates,
have ye shipped in that ship?”
Queequeg
and I had just left the Pequod, and were sauntering away from the water, for
the moment each occupied with his own thoughts, when the above words were put
to us by a stranger, who, pausing before us, levelled his massive forefinger at
the vessel in question. He was but shabbily apparelled in faded jacket and
patched trowsers; a rag of a black handkerchief investing his neck. A confluent
small-pox had in all directions flowed over his face, and left it like the
complicated ribbed bed of a torrent, when the rushing waters have been dried
up.
“Have
ye shipped in her?” he repeated.
“You
mean the ship Pequod, I suppose,” said I, trying to gain a little more time for
an uninterrupted look at him.
“Aye,
the Pequod—that ship there,” he said, drawing back his whole arm, and then
rapidly shoving it straight out from him, with the fixed bayonet of his pointed
finger darted full at the object.
“Yes,”
said I, “we have just signed the articles.”
“Anything
down there about your souls?”
“About
what?”
“Oh,
perhaps you hav'n't got any,” he said quickly. “No matter though, I know many
chaps that hav'n't got any,—good luck to 'em; and they are all the better off
for it. A soul's a sort of a fifth wheel to a wagon.”
“What
are you jabbering about, shipmate?” said I.
“He's
got enough, though, to make up for all deficiencies of that sort in other
chaps,” abruptly said the stranger, placing a nervous emphasis upon the word
he.
“Queequeg,”
said I, “let's go; this fellow has broken loose from somewhere; he's talking
about something and somebody we don't know.”
“Stop!”
cried the stranger. “Ye said true—ye hav'n't seen Old Thunder yet, have ye?”
“Who's
Old Thunder?” said I, again riveted with the insane earnestness of his manner.
“Captain
Ahab.”
“What!
the captain of our ship, the Pequod?”
“Aye,
among some of us old sailor chaps, he goes by that name. Ye hav'n't seen him
yet, have ye?”
“No,
we hav'n't. He's sick they say, but is getting better, and will be all right
again before long.”
“All
right again before long!” laughed the stranger, with a solemnly derisive sort
of laugh. “Look ye; when Captain Ahab is all right, then this left arm of mine
will be all right; not before.”
“What
do you know about him?”
“What
did they tell you about him? Say that!”
“They
didn't tell much of anything about him; only I've heard that he's a good
whale-hunter, and a good captain to his crew.”
“That's
true, that's true—yes, both true enough. But you must jump when he gives an
order. Step and growl; growl and go—that's the word with Captain Ahab. But
nothing about that thing that happened to him off Cape Horn, long ago, when he
lay like dead for three days and nights; nothing about that deadly skrimmage
with the Spaniard afore the altar in Santa?—heard nothing about that, eh?
Nothing about the silver calabash he spat into? And nothing about his losing
his leg last voyage, according to the prophecy. Didn't ye hear a word about
them matters and something more, eh? No, I don't think ye did; how could ye? Who
knows it? Not all Nantucket, I guess. But hows'ever, mayhap, ye've heard tell
about the leg, and how he lost it; aye, ye have heard of that, I dare say. Oh
yes, that every one knows a'most—I mean they know he's only one leg; and that a
parmacetti took the other off.”
“My
friend,” said I, “what all this gibberish of yours is about, I don't know, and
I don't much care; for it seems to me that you must be a little damaged in the
head. But if you are speaking of Captain Ahab, of that ship there, the Pequod,
then let me tell you, that I know all about the loss of his leg.”
“All
about it, eh—sure you do?—all?”
“Pretty
sure.”
With
finger pointed and eye levelled at the Pequod, the beggar-like stranger stood a
moment, as if in a troubled reverie; then starting a little, turned and
said:—“Ye've shipped, have ye? Names down on the papers? Well, well, what's
signed, is signed; and what's to be, will be; and then again, perhaps it won't
be, after all. Anyhow, it's all fixed and arranged a'ready; and some sailors or
other must go with him, I suppose; as well these as any other men, God pity
'em! Morning to ye, shipmates, morning; the ineffable heavens bless ye; I'm
sorry I stopped ye.”
“Look
here, friend,” said I, “if you have anything important to tell us, out with it;
but if you are only trying to bamboozle us, you are mistaken in your game;
that's all I have to say.”
“And
it's said very well, and I like to hear a chap talk up that way; you are just
the man for him—the likes of ye. Morning to ye, shipmates, morning! Oh! when ye
get there, tell 'em I've concluded not to make one of 'em.”
“Ah,
my dear fellow, you can't fool us that way—you can't fool us. It is the easiest
thing in the world for a man to look as if he had a great secret in him.”
“Morning
to ye, shipmates, morning.”
“Morning
it is,” said I. “Come along, Queequeg, let's leave this crazy man. But stop,
tell me your name, will you?”
“Elijah.”
Elijah!
thought I, and we walked away, both commenting, after each other's fashion,
upon this ragged old sailor; and agreed that he was nothing but a humbug,
trying to be a bugbear. But we had not gone perhaps above a hundred yards, when
chancing to turn a corner, and looking back as I did so, who should be seen but
Elijah following us, though at a distance. Somehow, the sight of him struck me
so, that I said nothing to Queequeg of his being behind, but passed on with my
comrade, anxious to see whether the stranger would turn the same corner that we
did. He did; and then it seemed to me that he was dogging us, but with what
intent I could not for the life of me imagine. This circumstance, coupled with
his ambiguous, half-hinting, half-revealing, shrouded sort of talk, now begat
in me all kinds of vague wonderments and half-apprehensions, and all connected
with the Pequod; and Captain Ahab; and the leg he had lost; and the Cape Horn
fit; and the silver calabash; and what Captain Peleg had said of him, when I left
the ship the day previous; and the prediction of the squaw Tistig; and the
voyage we had bound ourselves to sail; and a hundred other shadowy things.
I
was resolved to satisfy myself whether this ragged Elijah was really dogging us
or not, and with that intent crossed the way with Queequeg, and on that side of
it retraced our steps. But Elijah passed on, without seeming to notice us. This
relieved me; and once more, and finally as it seemed to me, I pronounced him in
my heart, a humbug.
CHAPTER
20. All Astir.
A
day or two passed, and there was great activity aboard the Pequod. Not only
were the old sails being mended, but new sails were coming on board, and bolts
of canvas, and coils of rigging; in short, everything betokened that the ship's
preparations were hurrying to a close. Captain Peleg seldom or never went
ashore, but sat in his wigwam keeping a sharp look-out upon the hands: Bildad
did all the purchasing and providing at the stores; and the men employed in the
hold and on the rigging were working till long after night-fall.
On
the day following Queequeg's signing the articles, word was given at all the
inns where the ship's company were stopping, that their chests must be on board
before night, for there was no telling how soon the vessel might be sailing. So
Queequeg and I got down our traps, resolving, however, to sleep ashore till the
last. But it seems they always give very long notice in these cases, and the
ship did not sail for several days. But no wonder; there was a good deal to be
done, and there is no telling how many things to be thought of, before the
Pequod was fully equipped.
Every
one knows what a multitude of things—beds, sauce-pans, knives and forks,
shovels and tongs, napkins, nut-crackers, and what not, are indispensable to
the business of housekeeping. Just so with whaling, which necessitates a
three-years' housekeeping upon the wide ocean, far from all grocers,
costermongers, doctors, bakers, and bankers. And though this also holds true of
merchant vessels, yet not by any means to the same extent as with whalemen. For
besides the great length of the whaling voyage, the numerous articles peculiar
to the prosecution of the fishery, and the impossibility of replacing them at
the remote harbors usually frequented, it must be remembered, that of all
ships, whaling vessels are the most exposed to accidents of all kinds, and
especially to the destruction and loss of the very things upon which the
success of the voyage most depends. Hence, the spare boats, spare spars, and
spare lines and harpoons, and spare everythings, almost, but a spare Captain
and duplicate ship.
At
the period of our arrival at the Island, the heaviest storage of the Pequod had
been almost completed; comprising her beef, bread, water, fuel, and iron hoops
and staves. But, as before hinted, for some time there was a continual fetching
and carrying on board of divers odds and ends of things, both large and small.
Chief
among those who did this fetching and carrying was Captain Bildad's sister, a
lean old lady of a most determined and indefatigable spirit, but withal very
kindhearted, who seemed resolved that, if she could help it, nothing should be
found wanting in the Pequod, after once fairly getting to sea. At one time she
would come on board with a jar of pickles for the steward's pantry; another
time with a bunch of quills for the chief mate's desk, where he kept his log; a
third time with a roll of flannel for the small of some one's rheumatic back.
Never did any woman better deserve her name, which was Charity—Aunt Charity, as
everybody called her. And like a sister of charity did this charitable Aunt
Charity bustle about hither and thither, ready to turn her hand and heart to
anything that promised to yield safety, comfort, and consolation to all on
board a ship in which her beloved brother Bildad was concerned, and in which
she herself owned a score or two of well-saved dollars.
But
it was startling to see this excellent hearted Quakeress coming on board, as
she did the last day, with a long oil-ladle in one hand, and a still longer
whaling lance in the other. Nor was Bildad himself nor Captain Peleg at all
backward. As for Bildad, he carried about with him a long list of the articles
needed, and at every fresh arrival, down went his mark opposite that article
upon the paper. Every once in a while Peleg came hobbling out of his whalebone
den, roaring at the men down the hatchways, roaring up to the riggers at the
mast-head, and then concluded by roaring back into his wigwam.
During
these days of preparation, Queequeg and I often visited the craft, and as often
I asked about Captain Ahab, and how he was, and when he was going to come on
board his ship. To these questions they would answer, that he was getting
better and better, and was expected aboard every day; meantime, the two
captains, Peleg and Bildad, could attend to everything necessary to fit the
vessel for the voyage. If I had been downright honest with myself, I would have
seen very plainly in my heart that I did but half fancy being committed this
way to so long a voyage, without once laying my eyes on the man who was to be
the absolute dictator of it, so soon as the ship sailed out upon the open sea.
But when a man suspects any wrong, it sometimes happens that if he be already
involved in the matter, he insensibly strives to cover up his suspicions even
from himself. And much this way it was with me. I said nothing, and tried to
think nothing.
At
last it was given out that some time next day the ship would certainly sail. So
next morning, Queequeg and I took a very early start.
CHAPTER
21. Going Aboard.
It
was nearly six o'clock, but only grey imperfect misty dawn, when we drew nigh
the wharf.
“There
are some sailors running ahead there, if I see right,” said I to Queequeg, “it
can't be shadows; she's off by sunrise, I guess; come on!”
“Avast!”
cried a voice, whose owner at the same time coming close behind us, laid a hand
upon both our shoulders, and then insinuating himself between us, stood
stooping forward a little, in the uncertain twilight, strangely peering from
Queequeg to me. It was Elijah.
“Going
aboard?”
“Hands
off, will you,” said I.
“Lookee
here,” said Queequeg, shaking himself, “go 'way!”
“Ain't
going aboard, then?”
“Yes,
we are,” said I, “but what business is that of yours? Do you know, Mr. Elijah,
that I consider you a little impertinent?”
“No,
no, no; I wasn't aware of that,” said Elijah, slowly and wonderingly looking
from me to Queequeg, with the most unaccountable glances.
“Elijah,”
said I, “you will oblige my friend and me by withdrawing. We are going to the
Indian and Pacific Oceans, and would prefer not to be detained.”
“Ye
be, be ye? Coming back afore breakfast?”
“He's
cracked, Queequeg,” said I, “come on.”
“Holloa!”
cried stationary Elijah, hailing us when we had removed a few paces.
“Never
mind him,” said I, “Queequeg, come on.”
But
he stole up to us again, and suddenly clapping his hand on my shoulder,
said—“Did ye see anything looking like men going towards that ship a while
ago?”
Struck
by this plain matter-of-fact question, I answered, saying, “Yes, I thought I
did see four or five men; but it was too dim to be sure.”
“Very
dim, very dim,” said Elijah. “Morning to ye.”
Once
more we quitted him; but once more he came softly after us; and touching my
shoulder again, said, “See if you can find 'em now, will ye?
“Find
who?”
“Morning
to ye! morning to ye!” he rejoined, again moving off. “Oh! I was going to warn
ye against—but never mind, never mind—it's all one, all in the family
too;—sharp frost this morning, ain't it? Good-bye to ye. Shan't see ye again
very soon, I guess; unless it's before the Grand Jury.” And with these cracked
words he finally departed, leaving me, for the moment, in no small wonderment
at his frantic impudence.
At
last, stepping on board the Pequod, we found everything in profound quiet, not
a soul moving. The cabin entrance was locked within; the hatches were all on,
and lumbered with coils of rigging. Going forward to the forecastle, we found
the slide of the scuttle open. Seeing a light, we went down, and found only an
old rigger there, wrapped in a tattered pea-jacket. He was thrown at whole
length upon two chests, his face downwards and inclosed in his folded arms. The
profoundest slumber slept upon him.
“Those
sailors we saw, Queequeg, where can they have gone to?” said I, looking
dubiously at the sleeper. But it seemed that, when on the wharf, Queequeg had
not at all noticed what I now alluded to; hence I would have thought myself to
have been optically deceived in that matter, were it not for Elijah's otherwise
inexplicable question. But I beat the thing down; and again marking the
sleeper, jocularly hinted to Queequeg that perhaps we had best sit up with the
body; telling him to establish himself accordingly. He put his hand upon the
sleeper's rear, as though feeling if it was soft enough; and then, without more
ado, sat quietly down there.
“Gracious!
Queequeg, don't sit there,” said I.
“Oh!
perry dood seat,” said Queequeg, “my country way; won't hurt him face.”
“Face!”
said I, “call that his face? very benevolent countenance then; but how hard he
breathes, he's heaving himself; get off, Queequeg, you are heavy, it's grinding
the face of the poor. Get off, Queequeg! Look, he'll twitch you off soon. I
wonder he don't wake.”
Queequeg
removed himself to just beyond the head of the sleeper, and lighted his
tomahawk pipe. I sat at the feet. We kept the pipe passing over the sleeper,
from one to the other. Meanwhile, upon questioning him in his broken fashion,
Queequeg gave me to understand that, in his land, owing to the absence of
settees and sofas of all sorts, the king, chiefs, and great people generally,
were in the custom of fattening some of the lower orders for ottomans; and to
furnish a house comfortably in that respect, you had only to buy up eight or
ten lazy fellows, and lay them round in the piers and alcoves. Besides, it was
very convenient on an excursion; much better than those garden-chairs which are
convertible into walking-sticks; upon occasion, a chief calling his attendant,
and desiring him to make a settee of himself under a spreading tree, perhaps in
some damp marshy place.
While
narrating these things, every time Queequeg received the tomahawk from me, he
flourished the hatchet-side of it over the sleeper's head.
“What's
that for, Queequeg?”
“Perry
easy, kill-e; oh! perry easy!”
He
was going on with some wild reminiscences about his tomahawk-pipe, which, it
seemed, had in its two uses both brained his foes and soothed his soul, when we
were directly attracted to the sleeping rigger. The strong vapor now completely
filling the contracted hole, it began to tell upon him. He breathed with a sort
of muffledness; then seemed troubled in the nose; then revolved over once or
twice; then sat up and rubbed his eyes.
“Holloa!”
he breathed at last, “who be ye smokers?”
“Shipped
men,” answered I, “when does she sail?”
“Aye,
aye, ye are going in her, be ye? She sails to-day. The Captain came aboard last
night.”
“What
Captain?—Ahab?”
“Who
but him indeed?”
I
was going to ask him some further questions concerning Ahab, when we heard a
noise on deck.
“Holloa!
Starbuck's astir,” said the rigger. “He's a lively chief mate, that; good man,
and a pious; but all alive now, I must turn to.” And so saying he went on deck,
and we followed.
It
was now clear sunrise. Soon the crew came on board in twos and threes; the
riggers bestirred themselves; the mates were actively engaged; and several of
the shore people were busy in bringing various last things on board. Meanwhile
Captain Ahab remained invisibly enshrined within his cabin.
CHAPTER
22. Merry Christmas.
At
length, towards noon, upon the final dismissal of the ship's riggers, and after
the Pequod had been hauled out from the wharf, and after the ever-thoughtful
Charity had come off in a whale-boat, with her last gift—a night-cap for Stubb,
the second mate, her brother-in-law, and a spare Bible for the steward—after
all this, the two Captains, Peleg and Bildad, issued from the cabin, and
turning to the chief mate, Peleg said:
“Now,
Mr. Starbuck, are you sure everything is right? Captain Ahab is all ready—just
spoke to him—nothing more to be got from shore, eh? Well, call all hands, then.
Muster 'em aft here—blast 'em!”
“No
need of profane words, however great the hurry, Peleg,” said Bildad, “but away
with thee, friend Starbuck, and do our bidding.”
How
now! Here upon the very point of starting for the voyage, Captain Peleg and
Captain Bildad were going it with a high hand on the quarter-deck, just as if
they were to be joint-commanders at sea, as well as to all appearances in port.
And, as for Captain Ahab, no sign of him was yet to be seen; only, they said he
was in the cabin. But then, the idea was, that his presence was by no means
necessary in getting the ship under weigh, and steering her well out to sea.
Indeed, as that was not at all his proper business, but the pilot's; and as he
was not yet completely recovered—so they said—therefore, Captain Ahab stayed
below. And all this seemed natural enough; especially as in the merchant
service many captains never show themselves on deck for a considerable time
after heaving up the anchor, but remain over the cabin table, having a farewell
merry-making with their shore friends, before they quit the ship for good with
the pilot.
But
there was not much chance to think over the matter, for Captain Peleg was now
all alive. He seemed to do most of the talking and commanding, and not Bildad.
“Aft
here, ye sons of bachelors,” he cried, as the sailors lingered at the
main-mast. “Mr. Starbuck, drive 'em aft.”
“Strike
the tent there!”—was the next order. As I hinted before, this whalebone marquee
was never pitched except in port; and on board the Pequod, for thirty years,
the order to strike the tent was well known to be the next thing to heaving up
the anchor.
“Man
the capstan! Blood and thunder!—jump!”—was the next command, and the crew
sprang for the handspikes.
Now
in getting under weigh, the station generally occupied by the pilot is the
forward part of the ship. And here Bildad, who, with Peleg, be it known, in
addition to his other officers, was one of the licensed pilots of the port—he
being suspected to have got himself made a pilot in order to save the Nantucket
pilot-fee to all the ships he was concerned in, for he never piloted any other
craft—Bildad, I say, might now be seen actively engaged in looking over the
bows for the approaching anchor, and at intervals singing what seemed a dismal
stave of psalmody, to cheer the hands at the windlass, who roared forth some
sort of a chorus about the girls in Booble Alley, with hearty good will.
Nevertheless, not three days previous, Bildad had told them that no profane
songs would be allowed on board the Pequod, particularly in getting under
weigh; and Charity, his sister, had placed a small choice copy of Watts in each
seaman's berth.
Meantime,
overseeing the other part of the ship, Captain Peleg ripped and swore astern in
the most frightful manner. I almost thought he would sink the ship before the
anchor could be got up; involuntarily I paused on my handspike, and told
Queequeg to do the same, thinking of the perils we both ran, in starting on the
voyage with such a devil for a pilot. I was comforting myself, however, with
the thought that in pious Bildad might be found some salvation, spite of his
seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay; when I felt a sudden sharp poke in my
rear, and turning round, was horrified at the apparition of Captain Peleg in
the act of withdrawing his leg from my immediate vicinity. That was my first
kick.
“Is
that the way they heave in the marchant service?” he roared. “Spring, thou
sheep-head; spring, and break thy backbone! Why don't ye spring, I say, all of
ye—spring! Quohog! spring, thou chap with the red whiskers; spring there,
Scotch-cap; spring, thou green pants. Spring, I say, all of ye, and spring your
eyes out!” And so saying, he moved along the windlass, here and there using his
leg very freely, while imperturbable Bildad kept leading off with his psalmody.
Thinks I, Captain Peleg must have been drinking something to-day.
At
last the anchor was up, the sails were set, and off we glided. It was a short,
cold Christmas; and as the short northern day merged into night, we found
ourselves almost broad upon the wintry ocean, whose freezing spray cased us in
ice, as in polished armor. The long rows of teeth on the bulwarks glistened in
the moonlight; and like the white ivory tusks of some huge elephant, vast
curving icicles depended from the bows.
Lank
Bildad, as pilot, headed the first watch, and ever and anon, as the old craft
deep dived into the green seas, and sent the shivering frost all over her, and
the winds howled, and the cordage rang, his steady notes were heard,—
“Sweet fields beyond the swelling flood,
Stand dressed in living green.
So to the Jews old Canaan stood,
While Jordan rolled between.”
Never
did those sweet words sound more sweetly to me than then. They were full of
hope and fruition. Spite of this frigid winter night in the boisterous
Atlantic, spite of my wet feet and wetter jacket, there was yet, it then seemed
to me, many a pleasant haven in store; and meads and glades so eternally
vernal, that the grass shot up by the spring, untrodden, unwilted, remains at
midsummer.
At
last we gained such an offing, that the two pilots were needed no longer. The
stout sail-boat that had accompanied us began ranging alongside.
It
was curious and not unpleasing, how Peleg and Bildad were affected at this juncture,
especially Captain Bildad. For loath to depart, yet; very loath to leave, for
good, a ship bound on so long and perilous a voyage—beyond both stormy Capes; a
ship in which some thousands of his hard earned dollars were invested; a ship,
in which an old shipmate sailed as captain; a man almost as old as he, once
more starting to encounter all the terrors of the pitiless jaw; loath to say
good-bye to a thing so every way brimful of every interest to him,—poor old
Bildad lingered long; paced the deck with anxious strides; ran down into the
cabin to speak another farewell word there; again came on deck, and looked to
windward; looked towards the wide and endless waters, only bounded by the
far-off unseen Eastern Continents; looked towards the land; looked aloft;
looked right and left; looked everywhere and nowhere; and at last, mechanically
coiling a rope upon its pin, convulsively grasped stout Peleg by the hand, and
holding up a lantern, for a moment stood gazing heroically in his face, as much
as to say, “Nevertheless, friend Peleg, I can stand it; yes, I can.”
As
for Peleg himself, he took it more like a philosopher; but for all his
philosophy, there was a tear twinkling in his eye, when the lantern came too
near. And he, too, did not a little run from cabin to deck—now a word below,
and now a word with Starbuck, the chief mate.
But,
at last, he turned to his comrade, with a final sort of look about
him,—“Captain Bildad—come, old shipmate, we must go. Back the main-yard there!
Boat ahoy! Stand by to come close alongside, now! Careful, careful!—come,
Bildad, boy—say your last. Luck to ye, Starbuck—luck to ye, Mr. Stubb—luck to
ye, Mr. Flask—good-bye and good luck to ye all—and this day three years I'll
have a hot supper smoking for ye in old Nantucket. Hurrah and away!”
“God
bless ye, and have ye in His holy keeping, men,” murmured old Bildad, almost
incoherently. “I hope ye'll have fine weather now, so that Captain Ahab may
soon be moving among ye—a pleasant sun is all he needs, and ye'll have plenty
of them in the tropic voyage ye go. Be careful in the hunt, ye mates. Don't
stave the boats needlessly, ye harpooneers; good white cedar plank is raised
full three per cent. within the year. Don't forget your prayers, either. Mr.
Starbuck, mind that cooper don't waste the spare staves. Oh! the sail-needles
are in the green locker! Don't whale it too much a' Lord's days, men; but don't
miss a fair chance either, that's rejecting Heaven's good gifts. Have an eye to
the molasses tierce, Mr. Stubb; it was a little leaky, I thought. If ye touch
at the islands, Mr. Flask, beware of fornication. Good-bye, good-bye! Don't
keep that cheese too long down in the hold, Mr. Starbuck; it'll spoil. Be
careful with the butter—twenty cents the pound it was, and mind ye, if—”
“Come,
come, Captain Bildad; stop palavering,—away!” and with that, Peleg hurried him
over the side, and both dropt into the boat.
Ship
and boat diverged; the cold, damp night breeze blew between; a screaming gull
flew overhead; the two hulls wildly rolled; we gave three heavy-hearted cheers,
and blindly plunged like fate into the lone Atlantic.
CHAPTER
23. The Lee Shore.
Some
chapters back, one Bulkington was spoken of, a tall, newlanded mariner,
encountered in New Bedford at the inn.
When
on that shivering winter's night, the Pequod thrust her vindictive bows into
the cold malicious waves, who should I see standing at her helm but Bulkington!
I looked with sympathetic awe and fearfulness upon the man, who in mid-winter
just landed from a four years' dangerous voyage, could so unrestingly push off
again for still another tempestuous term. The land seemed scorching to his
feet. Wonderfullest things are ever the unmentionable; deep memories yield no
epitaphs; this six-inch chapter is the stoneless grave of Bulkington. Let me
only say that it fared with him as with the storm-tossed ship, that miserably
drives along the leeward land. The port would fain give succor; the port is
pitiful; in the port is safety, comfort, hearthstone, supper, warm blankets,
friends, all that's kind to our mortalities. But in that gale, the port, the
land, is that ship's direst jeopardy; she must fly all hospitality; one touch
of land, though it but graze the keel, would make her shudder through and
through. With all her might she crowds all sail off shore; in so doing, fights
'gainst the very winds that fain would blow her homeward; seeks all the lashed
sea's landlessness again; for refuge's sake forlornly rushing into peril; her
only friend her bitterest foe!
Know
ye now, Bulkington? Glimpses do ye seem to see of that mortally intolerable
truth; that all deep, earnest thinking is but the intrepid effort of the soul
to keep the open independence of her sea; while the wildest winds of heaven and
earth conspire to cast her on the treacherous, slavish shore?
But
as in landlessness alone resides highest truth, shoreless, indefinite as
God—so, better is it to perish in that howling infinite, than be ingloriously
dashed upon the lee, even if that were safety! For worm-like, then, oh! who
would craven crawl to land! Terrors of the terrible! is all this agony so vain?
Take heart, take heart, O Bulkington! Bear thee grimly, demigod! Up from the
spray of thy ocean-perishing—straight up, leaps thy apotheosis!
CHAPTER
24. The Advocate.
As
Queequeg and I are now fairly embarked in this business of whaling; and as this
business of whaling has somehow come to be regarded among landsmen as a rather
unpoetical and disreputable pursuit; therefore, I am all anxiety to convince
ye, ye landsmen, of the injustice hereby done to us hunters of whales.
In
the first place, it may be deemed almost superfluous to establish the fact,
that among people at large, the business of whaling is not accounted on a level
with what are called the liberal professions. If a stranger were introduced
into any miscellaneous metropolitan society, it would but slightly advance the
general opinion of his merits, were he presented to the company as a
harpooneer, say; and if in emulation of the naval officers he should append the
initials S.W.F. (Sperm Whale Fishery) to his visiting card, such a procedure
would be deemed pre-eminently presuming and ridiculous.
Doubtless
one leading reason why the world declines honoring us whalemen, is this: they
think that, at best, our vocation amounts to a butchering sort of business; and
that when actively engaged therein, we are surrounded by all manner of
defilements. Butchers we are, that is true. But butchers, also, and butchers of
the bloodiest badge have been all Martial Commanders whom the world invariably
delights to honor. And as for the matter of the alleged uncleanliness of our
business, ye shall soon be initiated into certain facts hitherto pretty
generally unknown, and which, upon the whole, will triumphantly plant the sperm
whale-ship at least among the cleanliest things of this tidy earth. But even
granting the charge in question to be true; what disordered slippery decks of a
whale-ship are comparable to the unspeakable carrion of those battle-fields
from which so many soldiers return to drink in all ladies' plaudits? And if the
idea of peril so much enhances the popular conceit of the soldier's profession;
let me assure ye that many a veteran who has freely marched up to a battery,
would quickly recoil at the apparition of the sperm whale's vast tail, fanning
into eddies the air over his head. For what are the comprehensible terrors of
man compared with the interlinked terrors and wonders of God!
But,
though the world scouts at us whale hunters, yet does it unwittingly pay us the
profoundest homage; yea, an all-abounding adoration! for almost all the tapers,
lamps, and candles that burn round the globe, burn, as before so many shrines,
to our glory!
But
look at this matter in other lights; weigh it in all sorts of scales; see what
we whalemen are, and have been.
Why
did the Dutch in De Witt's time have admirals of their whaling fleets? Why did
Louis XVI. of France, at his own personal expense, fit out whaling ships from
Dunkirk, and politely invite to that town some score or two of families from
our own island of Nantucket? Why did Britain between the years 1750 and 1788
pay to her whalemen in bounties upwards of £1,000,000? And lastly, how comes it
that we whalemen of America now outnumber all the rest of the banded whalemen
in the world; sail a navy of upwards of seven hundred vessels; manned by
eighteen thousand men; yearly consuming 4,000,000 of dollars; the ships worth,
at the time of sailing, $20,000,000! and every year importing into our harbors
a well reaped harvest of $7,000,000. How comes all this, if there be not
something puissant in whaling?
But
this is not the half; look again.
I
freely assert, that the cosmopolite philosopher cannot, for his life, point out
one single peaceful influence, which within the last sixty years has operated
more potentially upon the whole broad world, taken in one aggregate, than the
high and mighty business of whaling. One way and another, it has begotten
events so remarkable in themselves, and so continuously momentous in their
sequential issues, that whaling may well be regarded as that Egyptian mother,
who bore offspring themselves pregnant from her womb. It would be a hopeless,
endless task to catalogue all these things. Let a handful suffice. For many
years past the whale-ship has been the pioneer in ferreting out the remotest
and least known parts of the earth. She has explored seas and archipelagoes
which had no chart, where no Cook or Vancouver had ever sailed. If American and
European men-of-war now peacefully ride in once savage harbors, let them fire
salutes to the honor and glory of the whale-ship, which originally showed them
the way, and first interpreted between them and the savages. They may celebrate
as they will the heroes of Exploring Expeditions, your Cooks, your
Krusensterns; but I say that scores of anonymous Captains have sailed out of
Nantucket, that were as great, and greater than your Cook and your Krusenstern.
For in their succourless empty-handedness, they, in the heathenish sharked
waters, and by the beaches of unrecorded, javelin islands, battled with virgin
wonders and terrors that Cook with all his marines and muskets would not
willingly have dared. All that is made such a flourish of in the old South Sea
Voyages, those things were but the life-time commonplaces of our heroic
Nantucketers. Often, adventures which Vancouver dedicates three chapters to,
these men accounted unworthy of being set down in the ship's common log. Ah,
the world! Oh, the world!
Until
the whale fishery rounded Cape Horn, no commerce but colonial, scarcely any
intercourse but colonial, was carried on between Europe and the long line of
the opulent Spanish provinces on the Pacific coast. It was the whaleman who
first broke through the jealous policy of the Spanish crown, touching those
colonies; and, if space permitted, it might be distinctly shown how from those
whalemen at last eventuated the liberation of Peru, Chili, and Bolivia from the
yoke of Old Spain, and the establishment of the eternal democracy in those
parts.
That
great America on the other side of the sphere, Australia, was given to the
enlightened world by the whaleman. After its first blunder-born discovery by a
Dutchman, all other ships long shunned those shores as pestiferously barbarous;
but the whale-ship touched there. The whale-ship is the true mother of that now
mighty colony. Moreover, in the infancy of the first Australian settlement, the
emigrants were several times saved from starvation by the benevolent biscuit of
the whale-ship luckily dropping an anchor in their waters. The uncounted isles
of all Polynesia confess the same truth, and do commercial homage to the
whale-ship, that cleared the way for the missionary and the merchant, and in
many cases carried the primitive missionaries to their first destinations. If
that double-bolted land, Japan, is ever to become hospitable, it is the
whale-ship alone to whom the credit will be due; for already she is on the
threshold.
But
if, in the face of all this, you still declare that whaling has no æsthetically
noble associations connected with it, then am I ready to shiver fifty lances
with you there, and unhorse you with a split helmet every time.
The
whale has no famous author, and whaling no famous chronicler, you will say.
The
whale no famous author, and whaling no famous chronicler? Who wrote the first
account of our Leviathan? Who but mighty Job! And who composed the first narrative
of a whaling-voyage? Who, but no less a prince than Alfred the Great, who, with
his own royal pen, took down the words from Other, the Norwegian whale-hunter
of those times! And who pronounced our glowing eulogy in Parliament? Who, but
Edmund Burke!
True
enough, but then whalemen themselves are poor devils; they have no good blood
in their veins.
No
good blood in their veins? They have something better than royal blood there.
The grandmother of Benjamin Franklin was Mary Morrel; afterwards, by marriage,
Mary Folger, one of the old settlers of Nantucket, and the ancestress to a long
line of Folgers and harpooneers—all kith and kin to noble Benjamin—this day
darting the barbed iron from one side of the world to the other.
Good
again; but then all confess that somehow whaling is not respectable.
Whaling
not respectable? Whaling is imperial! By old English statutory law, the whale
is declared “a royal fish.” *
Oh,
that's only nominal! The whale himself has never figured in any grand imposing
way.
The
whale never figured in any grand imposing way? In one of the mighty triumphs
given to a Roman general upon his entering the world's capital, the bones of a
whale, brought all the way from the Syrian coast, were the most conspicuous
object in the cymballed procession.*
*See
subsequent chapters for something more on this head.
Grant
it, since you cite it; but, say what you will, there is no real dignity in
whaling.
No
dignity in whaling? The dignity of our calling the very heavens attest. Cetus
is a constellation in the South! No more! Drive down your hat in presence of
the Czar, and take it off to Queequeg! No more! I know a man that, in his
lifetime, has taken three hundred and fifty whales. I account that man more
honorable than that great captain of antiquity who boasted of taking as many
walled towns.
And,
as for me, if, by any possibility, there be any as yet undiscovered prime thing
in me; if I shall ever deserve any real repute in that small but high hushed
world which I might not be unreasonably ambitious of; if hereafter I shall do
anything that, upon the whole, a man might rather have done than to have left
undone; if, at my death, my executors, or more properly my creditors, find any
precious MSS. in my desk, then here I prospectively ascribe all the honor and
the glory to whaling; for a whale-ship was my Yale College and my Harvard.
CHAPTER
25. Postscript.
In
behalf of the dignity of whaling, I would fain advance naught but substantiated
facts. But after embattling his facts, an advocate who should wholly suppress a
not unreasonable surmise, which might tell eloquently upon his cause—such an
advocate, would he not be blameworthy?
It
is well known that at the coronation of kings and queens, even modern ones, a
certain curious process of seasoning them for their functions is gone through.
There is a saltcellar of state, so called, and there may be a castor of state.
How they use the salt, precisely—who knows? Certain I am, however, that a
king's head is solemnly oiled at his coronation, even as a head of salad. Can
it be, though, that they anoint it with a view of making its interior run well,
as they anoint machinery? Much might be ruminated here, concerning the
essential dignity of this regal process, because in common life we esteem but
meanly and contemptibly a fellow who anoints his hair, and palpably smells of
that anointing. In truth, a mature man who uses hair-oil, unless medicinally,
that man has probably got a quoggy spot in him somewhere. As a general rule, he
can't amount to much in his totality.
But
the only thing to be considered here, is this—what kind of oil is used at
coronations? Certainly it cannot be olive oil, nor macassar oil, nor castor
oil, nor bear's oil, nor train oil, nor cod-liver oil. What then can it
possibly be, but sperm oil in its unmanufactured, unpolluted state, the
sweetest of all oils?
Think
of that, ye loyal Britons! we whalemen supply your kings and queens with
coronation stuff!
CHAPTER
26. Knights and Squires.
The
chief mate of the Pequod was Starbuck, a native of Nantucket, and a Quaker by
descent. He was a long, earnest man, and though born on an icy coast, seemed
well adapted to endure hot latitudes, his flesh being hard as twice-baked
biscuit. Transported to the Indies, his live blood would not spoil like bottled
ale. He must have been born in some time of general drought and famine, or upon
one of those fast days for which his state is famous. Only some thirty arid
summers had he seen; those summers had dried up all his physical
superfluousness. But this, his thinness, so to speak, seemed no more the token
of wasting anxieties and cares, than it seemed the indication of any bodily
blight. It was merely the condensation of the man. He was by no means
ill-looking; quite the contrary. His pure tight skin was an excellent fit; and
closely wrapped up in it, and embalmed with inner health and strength, like a
revivified Egyptian, this Starbuck seemed prepared to endure for long ages to
come, and to endure always, as now; for be it Polar snow or torrid sun, like a
patent chronometer, his interior vitality was warranted to do well in all
climates. Looking into his eyes, you seemed to see there the yet lingering
images of those thousand-fold perils he had calmly confronted through life. A
staid, steadfast man, whose life for the most part was a telling pantomime of
action, and not a tame chapter of sounds. Yet, for all his hardy sobriety and
fortitude, there were certain qualities in him which at times affected, and in
some cases seemed well nigh to overbalance all the rest. Uncommonly
conscientious for a seaman, and endued with a deep natural reverence, the wild
watery loneliness of his life did therefore strongly incline him to
superstition; but to that sort of superstition, which in some organizations
seems rather to spring, somehow, from intelligence than from ignorance. Outward
portents and inward presentiments were his. And if at times these things bent
the welded iron of his soul, much more did his far-away domestic memories of
his young Cape wife and child, tend to bend him still more from the original
ruggedness of his nature, and open him still further to those latent influences
which, in some honest-hearted men, restrain the gush of dare-devil daring, so
often evinced by others in the more perilous vicissitudes of the fishery. “I
will have no man in my boat,” said Starbuck, “who is not afraid of a whale.” By
this, he seemed to mean, not only that the most reliable and useful courage was
that which arises from the fair estimation of the encountered peril, but that
an utterly fearless man is a far more dangerous comrade than a coward.
“Aye,
aye,” said Stubb, the second mate, “Starbuck, there, is as careful a man as
you'll find anywhere in this fishery.” But we shall ere long see what that word
“careful” precisely means when used by a man like Stubb, or almost any other
whale hunter.
Starbuck
was no crusader after perils; in him courage was not a sentiment; but a thing
simply useful to him, and always at hand upon all mortally practical occasions.
Besides, he thought, perhaps, that in this business of whaling, courage was one
of the great staple outfits of the ship, like her beef and her bread, and not
to be foolishly wasted. Wherefore he had no fancy for lowering for whales after
sun-down; nor for persisting in fighting a fish that too much persisted in
fighting him. For, thought Starbuck, I am here in this critical ocean to kill
whales for my living, and not to be killed by them for theirs; and that
hundreds of men had been so killed Starbuck well knew. What doom was his own
father's? Where, in the bottomless deeps, could he find the torn limbs of his
brother?
With
memories like these in him, and, moreover, given to a certain
superstitiousness, as has been said; the courage of this Starbuck which could,
nevertheless, still flourish, must indeed have been extreme. But it was not in
reasonable nature that a man so organized, and with such terrible experiences
and remembrances as he had; it was not in nature that these things should fail
in latently engendering an element in him, which, under suitable circumstances,
would break out from its confinement, and burn all his courage up. And brave as
he might be, it was that sort of bravery chiefly, visible in some intrepid men,
which, while generally abiding firm in the conflict with seas, or winds, or
whales, or any of the ordinary irrational horrors of the world, yet cannot
withstand those more terrific, because more spiritual terrors, which sometimes
menace you from the concentrating brow of an enraged and mighty man.
But
were the coming narrative to reveal in any instance, the complete abasement of
poor Starbuck's fortitude, scarce might I have the heart to write it; for it is
a thing most sorrowful, nay shocking, to expose the fall of valour in the soul.
Men may seem detestable as joint stock-companies and nations; knaves, fools,
and murderers there may be; men may have mean and meagre faces; but man, in the
ideal, is so noble and so sparkling, such a grand and glowing creature, that
over any ignominious blemish in him all his fellows should run to throw their
costliest robes. That immaculate manliness we feel within ourselves, so far
within us, that it remains intact though all the outer character seem gone;
bleeds with keenest anguish at the undraped spectacle of a valor-ruined man.
Nor can piety itself, at such a shameful sight, completely stifle her
upbraidings against the permitting stars. But this august dignity I treat of,
is not the dignity of kings and robes, but that abounding dignity which has no
robed investiture. Thou shalt see it shining in the arm that wields a pick or
drives a spike; that democratic dignity which, on all hands, radiates without
end from God; Himself! The great God absolute! The centre and circumference of
all democracy! His omnipresence, our divine equality!
If,
then, to meanest mariners, and renegades and castaways, I shall hereafter
ascribe high qualities, though dark; weave round them tragic graces; if even
the most mournful, perchance the most abased, among them all, shall at times
lift himself to the exalted mounts; if I shall touch that workman's arm with
some ethereal light; if I shall spread a rainbow over his disastrous set of
sun; then against all mortal critics bear me out in it, thou just Spirit of
Equality, which hast spread one royal mantle of humanity over all my kind! Bear
me out in it, thou great democratic God! who didst not refuse to the swart
convict, Bunyan, the pale, poetic pearl; Thou who didst clothe with doubly
hammered leaves of finest gold, the stumped and paupered arm of old Cervantes;
Thou who didst pick up Andrew Jackson from the pebbles; who didst hurl him upon
a war-horse; who didst thunder him higher than a throne! Thou who, in all Thy
mighty, earthly marchings, ever cullest Thy selectest champions from the kingly
commons; bear me out in it, O God!
CHAPTER
27. Knights and Squires.
Stubb
was the second mate. He was a native of Cape Cod; and hence, according to local
usage, was called a Cape-Cod-man. A happy-go-lucky; neither craven nor valiant;
taking perils as they came with an indifferent air; and while engaged in the most
imminent crisis of the chase, toiling away, calm and collected as a journeyman
joiner engaged for the year. Good-humored, easy, and careless, he presided over
his whale-boat as if the most deadly encounter were but a dinner, and his crew
all invited guests. He was as particular about the comfortable arrangement of
his part of the boat, as an old stage-driver is about the snugness of his box.
When close to the whale, in the very death-lock of the fight, he handled his
unpitying lance coolly and off-handedly, as a whistling tinker his hammer. He
would hum over his old rigadig tunes while flank and flank with the most
exasperated monster. Long usage had, for this Stubb, converted the jaws of
death into an easy chair. What he thought of death itself, there is no telling.
Whether he ever thought of it at all, might be a question; but, if he ever did
chance to cast his mind that way after a comfortable dinner, no doubt, like a
good sailor, he took it to be a sort of call of the watch to tumble aloft, and
bestir themselves there, about something which he would find out when he obeyed
the order, and not sooner.
What,
perhaps, with other things, made Stubb such an easy-going, unfearing man, so
cheerily trudging off with the burden of life in a world full of grave pedlars,
all bowed to the ground with their packs; what helped to bring about that
almost impious good-humor of his; that thing must have been his pipe. For, like
his nose, his short, black little pipe was one of the regular features of his
face. You would almost as soon have expected him to turn out of his bunk
without his nose as without his pipe. He kept a whole row of pipes there ready
loaded, stuck in a rack, within easy reach of his hand; and, whenever he turned
in, he smoked them all out in succession, lighting one from the other to the
end of the chapter; then loading them again to be in readiness anew. For, when
Stubb dressed, instead of first putting his legs into his trowsers, he put his
pipe into his mouth.
I
say this continual smoking must have been one cause, at least, of his peculiar
disposition; for every one knows that this earthly air, whether ashore or
afloat, is terribly infected with the nameless miseries of the numberless
mortals who have died exhaling it; and as in time of the cholera, some people
go about with a camphorated handkerchief to their mouths; so, likewise, against
all mortal tribulations, Stubb's tobacco smoke might have operated as a sort of
disinfecting agent.
The
third mate was Flask, a native of Tisbury, in Martha's Vineyard. A short,
stout, ruddy young fellow, very pugnacious concerning whales, who somehow
seemed to think that the great leviathans had personally and hereditarily
affronted him; and therefore it was a sort of point of honor with him, to
destroy them whenever encountered. So utterly lost was he to all sense of
reverence for the many marvels of their majestic bulk and mystic ways; and so
dead to anything like an apprehension of any possible danger from encountering
them; that in his poor opinion, the wondrous whale was but a species of
magnified mouse, or at least water-rat, requiring only a little circumvention
and some small application of time and trouble in order to kill and boil. This
ignorant, unconscious fearlessness of his made him a little waggish in the
matter of whales; he followed these fish for the fun of it; and a three years'
voyage round Cape Horn was only a jolly joke that lasted that length of time.
As a carpenter's nails are divided into wrought nails and cut nails; so mankind
may be similarly divided. Little Flask was one of the wrought ones; made to
clinch tight and last long. They called him King-Post on board of the Pequod;
because, in form, he could be well likened to the short, square timber known by
that name in Arctic whalers; and which by the means of many radiating side
timbers inserted into it, serves to brace the ship against the icy concussions
of those battering seas.
Now
these three mates—Starbuck, Stubb, and Flask, were momentous men. They it was
who by universal prescription commanded three of the Pequod's boats as
headsmen. In that grand order of battle in which Captain Ahab would probably
marshal his forces to descend on the whales, these three headsmen were as
captains of companies. Or, being armed with their long keen whaling spears,
they were as a picked trio of lancers; even as the harpooneers were flingers of
javelins.
And
since in this famous fishery, each mate or headsman, like a Gothic Knight of
old, is always accompanied by his boat-steerer or harpooneer, who in certain
conjunctures provides him with a fresh lance, when the former one has been
badly twisted, or elbowed in the assault; and moreover, as there generally
subsists between the two, a close intimacy and friendliness; it is therefore
but meet, that in this place we set down who the Pequod's harpooneers were, and
to what headsman each of them belonged.
First
of all was Queequeg, whom Starbuck, the chief mate, had selected for his
squire. But Queequeg is already known.
Next
was Tashtego, an unmixed Indian from Gay Head, the most westerly promontory of
Martha's Vineyard, where there still exists the last remnant of a village of
red men, which has long supplied the neighboring island of Nantucket with many
of her most daring harpooneers. In the fishery, they usually go by the generic
name of Gay-Headers. Tashtego's long, lean, sable hair, his high cheek bones,
and black rounding eyes—for an Indian, Oriental in their largeness, but
Antarctic in their glittering expression—all this sufficiently proclaimed him
an inheritor of the unvitiated blood of those proud warrior hunters, who, in
quest of the great New England moose, had scoured, bow in hand, the aboriginal
forests of the main. But no longer snuffing in the trail of the wild beasts of
the woodland, Tashtego now hunted in the wake of the great whales of the sea;
the unerring harpoon of the son fitly replacing the infallible arrow of the
sires. To look at the tawny brawn of his lithe snaky limbs, you would almost
have credited the superstitions of some of the earlier Puritans, and
half-believed this wild Indian to be a son of the Prince of the Powers of the
Air. Tashtego was Stubb the second mate's squire.
Third
among the harpooneers was Daggoo, a gigantic, coal-black negro-savage, with a
lion-like tread—an Ahasuerus to behold. Suspended from his ears were two golden
hoops, so large that the sailors called them ring-bolts, and would talk of
securing the top-sail halyards to them. In his youth Daggoo had voluntarily
shipped on board of a whaler, lying in a lonely bay on his native coast. And
never having been anywhere in the world but in Africa, Nantucket, and the pagan
harbors most frequented by whalemen; and having now led for many years the bold
life of the fishery in the ships of owners uncommonly heedful of what manner of
men they shipped; Daggoo retained all his barbaric virtues, and erect as a
giraffe, moved about the decks in all the pomp of six feet five in his socks.
There was a corporeal humility in looking up at him; and a white man standing
before him seemed a white flag come to beg truce of a fortress. Curious to
tell, this imperial negro, Ahasuerus Daggoo, was the Squire of little Flask,
who looked like a chess-man beside him. As for the residue of the Pequod's company,
be it said, that at the present day not one in two of the many thousand men
before the mast employed in the American whale fishery, are Americans born,
though pretty nearly all the officers are. Herein it is the same with the
American whale fishery as with the American army and military and merchant
navies, and the engineering forces employed in the construction of the American
Canals and Railroads. The same, I say, because in all these cases the native
American liberally provides the brains, the rest of the world as generously
supplying the muscles. No small number of these whaling seamen belong to the
Azores, where the outward bound Nantucket whalers frequently touch to augment
their crews from the hardy peasants of those rocky shores. In like manner, the
Greenland whalers sailing out of Hull or London, put in at the Shetland
Islands, to receive the full complement of their crew. Upon the passage
homewards, they drop them there again. How it is, there is no telling, but
Islanders seem to make the best whalemen. They were nearly all Islanders in the
Pequod, Isolatoes too, I call such, not acknowledging the common continent of
men, but each Isolato living on a separate continent of his own. Yet now,
federated along one keel, what a set these Isolatoes were! An Anacharsis Clootz
deputation from all the isles of the sea, and all the ends of the earth,
accompanying Old Ahab in the Pequod to lay the world's grievances before that
bar from which not very many of them ever come back. Black Little Pip—he never did—oh,
no! he went before. Poor Alabama boy! On the grim Pequod's forecastle, ye shall
ere long see him, beating his tambourine; prelusive of the eternal time, when
sent for, to the great quarter-deck on high, he was bid strike in with angels,
and beat his tambourine in glory; called a coward here, hailed a hero there!
CHAPTER
28. Ahab.
For
several days after leaving Nantucket, nothing above hatches was seen of Captain
Ahab. The mates regularly relieved each other at the watches, and for aught that
could be seen to the contrary, they seemed to be the only commanders of the
ship; only they sometimes issued from the cabin with orders so sudden and
peremptory, that after all it was plain they but commanded vicariously. Yes,
their supreme lord and dictator was there, though hitherto unseen by any eyes
not permitted to penetrate into the now sacred retreat of the cabin.
Every
time I ascended to the deck from my watches below, I instantly gazed aft to
mark if any strange face were visible; for my first vague disquietude touching
the unknown captain, now in the seclusion of the sea, became almost a
perturbation. This was strangely heightened at times by the ragged Elijah's
diabolical incoherences uninvitedly recurring to me, with a subtle energy I could
not have before conceived of. But poorly could I withstand them, much as in
other moods I was almost ready to smile at the solemn whimsicalities of that
outlandish prophet of the wharves. But whatever it was of apprehensiveness or
uneasiness—to call it so—which I felt, yet whenever I came to look about me in
the ship, it seemed against all warrantry to cherish such emotions. For though
the harpooneers, with the great body of the crew, were a far more barbaric,
heathenish, and motley set than any of the tame merchant-ship companies which
my previous experiences had made me acquainted with, still I ascribed this—and
rightly ascribed it—to the fierce uniqueness of the very nature of that wild
Scandinavian vocation in which I had so abandonedly embarked. But it was
especially the aspect of the three chief officers of the ship, the mates, which
was most forcibly calculated to allay these colourless misgivings, and induce
confidence and cheerfulness in every presentment of the voyage. Three better,
more likely sea-officers and men, each in his own different way, could not
readily be found, and they were every one of them Americans; a Nantucketer, a
Vineyarder, a Cape man. Now, it being Christmas when the ship shot from out her
harbor, for a space we had biting Polar weather, though all the time running
away from it to the southward; and by every degree and minute of latitude which
we sailed, gradually leaving that merciless winter, and all its intolerable
weather behind us. It was one of those less lowering, but still grey and gloomy
enough mornings of the transition, when with a fair wind the ship was rushing
through the water with a vindictive sort of leaping and melancholy rapidity,
that as I mounted to the deck at the call of the forenoon watch, so soon as I levelled
my glance towards the taffrail, foreboding shivers ran over me. Reality outran
apprehension; Captain Ahab stood upon his quarter-deck.
There
seemed no sign of common bodily illness about him, nor of the recovery from
any. He looked like a man cut away from the stake, when the fire has
overrunningly wasted all the limbs without consuming them, or taking away one
particle from their compacted aged robustness. His whole high, broad form,
seemed made of solid bronze, and shaped in an unalterable mould, like Cellini's
cast Perseus. Threading its way out from among his grey hairs, and continuing
right down one side of his tawny scorched face and neck, till it disappeared in
his clothing, you saw a slender rod-like mark, lividly whitish. It resembled
that perpendicular seam sometimes made in the straight, lofty trunk of a great
tree, when the upper lightning tearingly darts down it, and without wrenching a
single twig, peels and grooves out the bark from top to bottom, ere running off
into the soil, leaving the tree still greenly alive, but branded. Whether that
mark was born with him, or whether it was the scar left by some desperate
wound, no one could certainly say. By some tacit consent, throughout the voyage
little or no allusion was made to it, especially by the mates. But once
Tashtego's senior, an old Gay-Head Indian among the crew, superstitiously
asserted that not till he was full forty years old did Ahab become that way
branded, and then it came upon him, not in the fury of any mortal fray, but in
an elemental strife at sea. Yet, this wild hint seemed inferentially negatived,
by what a grey Manxman insinuated, an old sepulchral man, who, having never
before sailed out of Nantucket, had never ere this laid eye upon wild Ahab.
Nevertheless, the old sea-traditions, the immemorial credulities, popularly
invested this old Manxman with preternatural powers of discernment. So that no
white sailor seriously contradicted him when he said that if ever Captain Ahab
should be tranquilly laid out—which might hardly come to pass, so he
muttered—then, whoever should do that last office for the dead, would find a
birth-mark on him from crown to sole.
So
powerfully did the whole grim aspect of Ahab affect me, and the livid brand
which streaked it, that for the first few moments I hardly noted that not a
little of this overbearing grimness was owing to the barbaric white leg upon
which he partly stood. It had previously come to me that this ivory leg had at
sea been fashioned from the polished bone of the sperm whale's jaw. “Aye, he
was dismasted off Japan,” said the old Gay-Head Indian once; “but like his
dismasted craft, he shipped another mast without coming home for it. He has a
quiver of 'em.”
I
was struck with the singular posture he maintained. Upon each side of the
Pequod's quarter deck, and pretty close to the mizzen shrouds, there was an
auger hole, bored about half an inch or so, into the plank. His bone leg
steadied in that hole; one arm elevated, and holding by a shroud; Captain Ahab
stood erect, looking straight out beyond the ship's ever-pitching prow. There
was an infinity of firmest fortitude, a determinate, unsurrenderable
wilfulness, in the fixed and fearless, forward dedication of that glance. Not a
word he spoke; nor did his officers say aught to him; though by all their
minutest gestures and expressions, they plainly showed the uneasy, if not
painful, consciousness of being under a troubled master-eye. And not only that,
but moody stricken Ahab stood before them with a crucifixion in his face; in all
the nameless regal overbearing dignity of some mighty woe.
Ere
long, from his first visit in the air, he withdrew into his cabin. But after
that morning, he was every day visible to the crew; either standing in his
pivot-hole, or seated upon an ivory stool he had; or heavily walking the deck.
As the sky grew less gloomy; indeed, began to grow a little genial, he became
still less and less a recluse; as if, when the ship had sailed from home,
nothing but the dead wintry bleakness of the sea had then kept him so secluded.
And, by and by, it came to pass, that he was almost continually in the air;
but, as yet, for all that he said, or perceptibly did, on the at last sunny
deck, he seemed as unnecessary there as another mast. But the Pequod was only
making a passage now; not regularly cruising; nearly all whaling preparatives
needing supervision the mates were fully competent to, so that there was little
or nothing, out of himself, to employ or excite Ahab, now; and thus chase away,
for that one interval, the clouds that layer upon layer were piled upon his
brow, as ever all clouds choose the loftiest peaks to pile themselves upon.
Nevertheless,
ere long, the warm, warbling persuasiveness of the pleasant, holiday weather we
came to, seemed gradually to charm him from his mood. For, as when the
red-cheeked, dancing girls, April and May, trip home to the wintry,
misanthropic woods; even the barest, ruggedest, most thunder-cloven old oak
will at least send forth some few green sprouts, to welcome such glad-hearted
visitants; so Ahab did, in the end, a little respond to the playful allurings
of that girlish air. More than once did he put forth the faint blossom of a
look, which, in any other man, would have soon flowered out in a smile.
CHAPTER
29. Enter Ahab; to Him, Stubb.
Some
days elapsed, and ice and icebergs all astern, the Pequod now went rolling
through the bright Quito spring, which, at sea, almost perpetually reigns on
the threshold of the eternal August of the Tropic. The warmly cool, clear,
ringing, perfumed, overflowing, redundant days, were as crystal goblets of
Persian sherbet, heaped up—flaked up, with rose-water snow. The starred and
stately nights seemed haughty dames in jewelled velvets, nursing at home in
lonely pride, the memory of their absent conquering Earls, the golden helmeted
suns! For sleeping man, 'twas hard to choose between such winsome days and such
seducing nights. But all the witcheries of that unwaning weather did not merely
lend new spells and potencies to the outward world. Inward they turned upon the
soul, especially when the still mild hours of eve came on; then, memory shot
her crystals as the clear ice most forms of noiseless twilights. And all these
subtle agencies, more and more they wrought on Ahab's texture.
Old
age is always wakeful; as if, the longer linked with life, the less man has to
do with aught that looks like death. Among sea-commanders, the old greybeards
will oftenest leave their berths to visit the night-cloaked deck. It was so
with Ahab; only that now, of late, he seemed so much to live in the open air,
that truly speaking, his visits were more to the cabin, than from the cabin to
the planks. “It feels like going down into one's tomb,”—he would mutter to
himself—“for an old captain like me to be descending this narrow scuttle, to go
to my grave-dug berth.”
So,
almost every twenty-four hours, when the watches of the night were set, and the
band on deck sentinelled the slumbers of the band below; and when if a rope was
to be hauled upon the forecastle, the sailors flung it not rudely down, as by
day, but with some cautiousness dropt it to its place for fear of disturbing
their slumbering shipmates; when this sort of steady quietude would begin to
prevail, habitually, the silent steersman would watch the cabin-scuttle; and
ere long the old man would emerge, gripping at the iron banister, to help his
crippled way. Some considering touch of humanity was in him; for at times like
these, he usually abstained from patrolling the quarter-deck; because to his
wearied mates, seeking repose within six inches of his ivory heel, such would
have been the reverberating crack and din of that bony step, that their dreams
would have been on the crunching teeth of sharks. But once, the mood was on him
too deep for common regardings; and as with heavy, lumber-like pace he was
measuring the ship from taffrail to mainmast, Stubb, the old second mate, came
up from below, with a certain unassured, deprecating humorousness, hinted that
if Captain Ahab was pleased to walk the planks, then, no one could say nay; but
there might be some way of muffling the noise; hinting something indistinctly
and hesitatingly about a globe of tow, and the insertion into it, of the ivory
heel. Ah! Stubb, thou didst not know Ahab then.
“Am
I a cannon-ball, Stubb,” said Ahab, “that thou wouldst wad me that fashion? But
go thy ways; I had forgot. Below to thy nightly grave; where such as ye sleep
between shrouds, to use ye to the filling one at last.—Down, dog, and kennel!”
Starting
at the unforseen concluding exclamation of the so suddenly scornful old man,
Stubb was speechless a moment; then said excitedly, “I am not used to be spoken
to that way, sir; I do but less than half like it, sir.”
“Avast!”
gritted Ahab between his set teeth, and violently moving away, as if to avoid
some passionate temptation.
“No,
sir; not yet,” said Stubb, emboldened, “I will not tamely be called a dog,
sir.”
“Then
be called ten times a donkey, and a mule, and an ass, and begone, or I'll clear
the world of thee!”
As
he said this, Ahab advanced upon him with such overbearing terrors in his
aspect, that Stubb involuntarily retreated.
“I
was never served so before without giving a hard blow for it,” muttered Stubb,
as he found himself descending the cabin-scuttle. “It's very queer. Stop,
Stubb; somehow, now, I don't well know whether to go back and strike him,
or—what's that?—down here on my knees and pray for him? Yes, that was the
thought coming up in me; but it would be the first time I ever did pray. It's
queer; very queer; and he's queer too; aye, take him fore and aft, he's about
the queerest old man Stubb ever sailed with. How he flashed at me!—his eyes
like powder-pans! is he mad? Anyway there's something on his mind, as sure as
there must be something on a deck when it cracks. He aint in his bed now,
either, more than three hours out of the twenty-four; and he don't sleep then.
Didn't that Dough-Boy, the steward, tell me that of a morning he always finds
the old man's hammock clothes all rumpled and tumbled, and the sheets down at
the foot, and the coverlid almost tied into knots, and the pillow a sort of
frightful hot, as though a baked brick had been on it? A hot old man! I guess
he's got what some folks ashore call a conscience; it's a kind of Tic-Dolly-row
they say—worse nor a toothache. Well, well; I don't know what it is, but the
Lord keep me from catching it. He's full of riddles; I wonder what he goes into
the after hold for, every night, as Dough-Boy tells me he suspects; what's that
for, I should like to know? Who's made appointments with him in the hold? Ain't
that queer, now? But there's no telling, it's the old game—Here goes for a
snooze. Damn me, it's worth a fellow's while to be born into the world, if only
to fall right asleep. And now that I think of it, that's about the first thing
babies do, and that's a sort of queer, too. Damn me, but all things are queer,
come to think of 'em. But that's against my principles. Think not, is my
eleventh commandment; and sleep when you can, is my twelfth—So here goes again.
But how's that? didn't he call me a dog? blazes! he called me ten times a
donkey, and piled a lot of jackasses on top of that! He might as well have
kicked me, and done with it. Maybe he did kick me, and I didn't observe it, I
was so taken all aback with his brow, somehow. It flashed like a bleached bone.
What the devil's the matter with me? I don't stand right on my legs. Coming
afoul of that old man has a sort of turned me wrong side out. By the Lord, I
must have been dreaming, though—How? how? how?—but the only way's to stash it;
so here goes to hammock again; and in the morning, I'll see how this plaguey
juggling thinks over by daylight.”
CHAPTER
30. The Pipe.
When
Stubb had departed, Ahab stood for a while leaning over the bulwarks; and then,
as had been usual with him of late, calling a sailor of the watch, he sent him
below for his ivory stool, and also his pipe. Lighting the pipe at the binnacle
lamp and planting the stool on the weather side of the deck, he sat and smoked.
In
old Norse times, the thrones of the sea-loving Danish kings were fabricated,
saith tradition, of the tusks of the narwhale. How could one look at Ahab then,
seated on that tripod of bones, without bethinking him of the royalty it
symbolized? For a Khan of the plank, and a king of the sea, and a great lord of
Leviathans was Ahab.
Some
moments passed, during which the thick vapor came from his mouth in quick and
constant puffs, which blew back again into his face. “How now,” he soliloquized
at last, withdrawing the tube, “this smoking no longer soothes. Oh, my pipe!
hard must it go with me if thy charm be gone! Here have I been unconsciously
toiling, not pleasuring—aye, and ignorantly smoking to windward all the while;
to windward, and with such nervous whiffs, as if, like the dying whale, my
final jets were the strongest and fullest of trouble. What business have I with
this pipe? This thing that is meant for sereneness, to send up mild white
vapors among mild white hairs, not among torn iron-grey locks like mine. I'll
smoke no more—”
He
tossed the still lighted pipe into the sea. The fire hissed in the waves; the
same instant the ship shot by the bubble the sinking pipe made. With slouched
hat, Ahab lurchingly paced the planks.
CHAPTER
31. Queen Mab.
Next
morning Stubb accosted Flask.
“Such
a queer dream, King-Post, I never had. You know the old man's ivory leg, well I
dreamed he kicked me with it; and when I tried to kick back, upon my soul, my
little man, I kicked my leg right off! And then, presto! Ahab seemed a pyramid,
and I, like a blazing fool, kept kicking at it. But what was still more
curious, Flask—you know how curious all dreams are—through all this rage that I
was in, I somehow seemed to be thinking to myself, that after all, it was not
much of an insult, that kick from Ahab. 'Why,' thinks I, 'what's the row? It's
not a real leg, only a false leg.' And there's a mighty difference between a
living thump and a dead thump. That's what makes a blow from the hand, Flask,
fifty times more savage to bear than a blow from a cane. The living member—that
makes the living insult, my little man. And thinks I to myself all the while,
mind, while I was stubbing my silly toes against that cursed pyramid—so
confoundedly contradictory was it all, all the while, I say, I was thinking to
myself, 'what's his leg now, but a cane—a whalebone cane. Yes,' thinks I, 'it
was only a playful cudgelling—in fact, only a whaleboning that he gave me—not a
base kick. Besides,' thinks I, 'look at it once; why, the end of it—the foot
part—what a small sort of end it is; whereas, if a broad footed farmer kicked
me, there's a devilish broad insult. But this insult is whittled down to a
point only.' But now comes the greatest joke of the dream, Flask. While I was
battering away at the pyramid, a sort of badger-haired old merman, with a hump
on his back, takes me by the shoulders, and slews me round. 'What are you
'bout?' says he. Slid! man, but I was frightened. Such a phiz! But, somehow,
next moment I was over the fright. 'What am I about?' says I at last. 'And what
business is that of yours, I should like to know, Mr. Humpback? Do you want a
kick?' By the lord, Flask, I had no sooner said that, than he turned round his
stern to me, bent over, and dragging up a lot of seaweed he had for a
clout—what do you think, I saw?—why thunder alive, man, his stern was stuck
full of marlinspikes, with the points out. Says I, on second thoughts, 'I guess
I won't kick you, old fellow.' 'Wise Stubb,' said he, 'wise Stubb;' and kept
muttering it all the time, a sort of eating of his own gums like a chimney hag.
Seeing he wasn't going to stop saying over his 'wise Stubb, wise Stubb,' I
thought I might as well fall to kicking the pyramid again. But I had only just
lifted my foot for it, when he roared out, 'Stop that kicking!' 'Halloa,' says
I, 'what's the matter now, old fellow?' 'Look ye here,' says he; 'let's argue
the insult. Captain Ahab kicked ye, didn't he?' 'Yes, he did,' says I—'right
here it was.' 'Very good,' says he—'he used his ivory leg, didn't he?' 'Yes, he
did,' says I. 'Well then,' says he, 'wise Stubb, what have you to complain of?
Didn't he kick with right good will? it wasn't a common pitch pine leg he kicked
with, was it? No, you were kicked by a great man, and with a beautiful ivory
leg, Stubb. It's an honor; I consider it an honor. Listen, wise Stubb. In old
England the greatest lords think it great glory to be slapped by a queen, and
made garter-knights of; but, be your boast, Stubb, that ye were kicked by old
Ahab, and made a wise man of. Remember what I say; be kicked by him; account
his kicks honors; and on no account kick back; for you can't help yourself,
wise Stubb. Don't you see that pyramid?' With that, he all of a sudden seemed
somehow, in some queer fashion, to swim off into the air. I snored; rolled
over; and there I was in my hammock! Now, what do you think of that dream,
Flask?”
“I
don't know; it seems a sort of foolish to me, tho'.”
“May
be; may be. But it's made a wise man of me, Flask. D'ye see Ahab standing
there, sideways looking over the stern? Well, the best thing you can do, Flask,
is to let the old man alone; never speak to him, whatever he says. Halloa!
What's that he shouts? Hark!”
“Mast-head,
there! Look sharp, all of ye! There are whales hereabouts! If ye see a white
one, split your lungs for him!”
“What
do you think of that now, Flask? ain't there a small drop of something queer
about that, eh? A white whale—did ye mark that, man? Look ye—there's something
special in the wind. Stand by for it, Flask. Ahab has that that's bloody on his
mind. But, mum; he comes this way.”
CHAPTER
32. Cetology.
Already
we are boldly launched upon the deep; but soon we shall be lost in its
unshored, harbourless immensities. Ere that come to pass; ere the Pequod's
weedy hull rolls side by side with the barnacled hulls of the leviathan; at the
outset it is but well to attend to a matter almost indispensable to a thorough
appreciative understanding of the more special leviathanic revelations and
allusions of all sorts which are to follow.
It
is some systematized exhibition of the whale in his broad genera, that I would
now fain put before you. Yet is it no easy task. The classification of the
constituents of a chaos, nothing less is here essayed. Listen to what the best
and latest authorities have laid down.
“No
branch of Zoology is so much involved as that which is entitled Cetology,” says
Captain Scoresby, A.D. 1820.
“It
is not my intention, were it in my power, to enter into the inquiry as to the
true method of dividing the cetacea into groups and families. * * * Utter
confusion exists among the historians of this animal” (sperm whale), says
Surgeon Beale, A.D. 1839.
“Unfitness
to pursue our research in the unfathomable waters.” “Impenetrable veil covering
our knowledge of the cetacea.” “A field strewn with thorns.” “All these
incomplete indications but serve to torture us naturalists.”
Thus
speak of the whale, the great Cuvier, and John Hunter, and Lesson, those lights
of zoology and anatomy. Nevertheless, though of real knowledge there be little,
yet of books there are a plenty; and so in some small degree, with cetology, or
the science of whales. Many are the men, small and great, old and new, landsmen
and seamen, who have at large or in little, written of the whale. Run over a
few:—The Authors of the Bible; Aristotle; Pliny; Aldrovandi; Sir Thomas Browne;
Gesner; Ray; Linnæus; Rondeletius; Willoughby; Green; Artedi; Sibbald; Brisson;
Marten; Lacépède; Bonneterre; Desmarest; Baron Cuvier; Frederick Cuvier; John
Hunter; Owen; Scoresby; Beale; Bennett; J. Ross Browne; the Author of Miriam
Coffin; Olmstead; and the Rev. T. Cheever. But to what ultimate generalizing
purpose all these have written, the above cited extracts will show.
Of
the names in this list of whale authors, only those following Owen ever saw
living whales; and but one of them was a real professional harpooneer and
whaleman. I mean Captain Scoresby. On the separate subject of the Greenland or
right-whale, he is the best existing authority. But Scoresby knew nothing and
says nothing of the great sperm whale, compared with which the Greenland whale
is almost unworthy mentioning. And here be it said, that the Greenland whale is
an usurper upon the throne of the seas. He is not even by any means the largest
of the whales. Yet, owing to the long priority of his claims, and the profound
ignorance which, till some seventy years back, invested the then fabulous or
utterly unknown sperm-whale, and which ignorance to this present day still
reigns in all but some few scientific retreats and whale-ports; this usurpation
has been every way complete. Reference to nearly all the leviathanic allusions
in the great poets of past days, will satisfy you that the Greenland whale,
without one rival, was to them the monarch of the seas. But the time has at
last come for a new proclamation. This is Charing Cross; hear ye! good people
all,—the Greenland whale is deposed,—the great sperm whale now reigneth!
There
are only two books in being which at all pretend to put the living sperm whale
before you, and at the same time, in the remotest degree succeed in the
attempt. Those books are Beale's and Bennett's; both in their time surgeons to
English South-Sea whale-ships, and both exact and reliable men. The original
matter touching the sperm whale to be found in their volumes is necessarily
small; but so far as it goes, it is of excellent quality, though mostly
confined to scientific description. As yet, however, the sperm whale,
scientific or poetic, lives not complete in any literature. Far above all other
hunted whales, his is an unwritten life.
Now
the various species of whales need some sort of popular comprehensive
classification, if only an easy outline one for the present, hereafter to be
filled in all its departments by subsequent laborers. As no better man advances
to take this matter in hand, I hereupon offer my own poor endeavors. I promise
nothing complete; because any human thing supposed to be complete, must for
that very reason infallibly be faulty. I shall not pretend to a minute
anatomical description of the various species, or—in this place at least—to much
of any description. My object here is simply to project the draught of a
systematization of cetology. I am the architect, not the builder.
But
it is a ponderous task; no ordinary letter-sorter in the Post-Office is equal
to it. To grope down into the bottom of the sea after them; to have one's hands
among the unspeakable foundations, ribs, and very pelvis of the world; this is
a fearful thing. What am I that I should essay to hook the nose of this
leviathan! The awful tauntings in Job might well appal me. Will he (the
leviathan) make a covenant with thee? Behold the hope of him is vain! But I
have swam through libraries and sailed through oceans; I have had to do with
whales with these visible hands; I am in earnest; and I will try. There are
some preliminaries to settle.
First:
The uncertain, unsettled condition of this science of Cetology is in the very
vestibule attested by the fact, that in some quarters it still remains a moot
point whether a whale be a fish. In his System of Nature, A.D. 1776, Linnæus
declares, “I hereby separate the whales from the fish.” But of my own
knowledge, I know that down to the year 1850, sharks and shad, alewives and
herring, against Linnæus's express edict, were still found dividing the
possession of the same seas with the Leviathan.
The
grounds upon which Linnæus would fain have banished the whales from the waters,
he states as follows: “On account of their warm bilocular heart, their lungs,
their movable eyelids, their hollow ears, penem intrantem feminam mammis lactantem,”
and finally, “ex lege naturæ jure meritoque.” I submitted all this to my
friends Simeon Macey and Charley Coffin, of Nantucket, both messmates of mine
in a certain voyage, and they united in the opinion that the reasons set forth
were altogether insufficient. Charley profanely hinted they were humbug.
Be
it known that, waiving all argument, I take the good old fashioned ground that
the whale is a fish, and call upon holy Jonah to back me. This fundamental
thing settled, the next point is, in what internal respect does the whale
differ from other fish. Above, Linnæus has given you those items. But in brief,
they are these: lungs and warm blood; whereas, all other fish are lungless and
cold blooded.
Next:
how shall we define the whale, by his obvious externals, so as conspicuously to
label him for all time to come? To be short, then, a whale is a spouting fish
with a horizontal tail. There you have him. However contracted, that definition
is the result of expanded meditation. A walrus spouts much like a whale, but
the walrus is not a fish, because he is amphibious. But the last term of the
definition is still more cogent, as coupled with the first. Almost any one must
have noticed that all the fish familiar to landsmen have not a flat, but a
vertical, or up-and-down tail. Whereas, among spouting fish the tail, though it
may be similarly shaped, invariably assumes a horizontal position.
By
the above definition of what a whale is, I do by no means exclude from the
leviathanic brotherhood any sea creature hitherto identified with the whale by
the best informed Nantucketers; nor, on the other hand, link with it any fish
hitherto authoritatively regarded as alien.* Hence, all the smaller, spouting,
and horizontal tailed fish must be included in this ground-plan of Cetology.
Now, then, come the grand divisions of the entire whale host.
*I
am aware that down to the present time, the fish styled Lamatins and Dugongs
(Pig-fish and Sow-fish of the Coffins of Nantucket) are included by many
naturalists among the whales. But as these pig-fish are a noisy, contemptible
set, mostly lurking in the mouths of rivers, and feeding on wet hay, and
especially as they do not spout, I deny their credentials as whales; and have
presented them with their passports to quit the Kingdom of Cetology.
First:
According to magnitude I divide the whales into three primary BOOKS
(subdivisible into CHAPTERS), and these shall comprehend them all, both small
and large.
I.
THE FOLIO WHALE; II. the OCTAVO WHALE; III. the DUODECIMO WHALE.
As
the type of the FOLIO I present the Sperm Whale; of the OCTAVO, the Grampus; of
the DUODECIMO, the Porpoise.
FOLIOS.
Among these I here include the following chapters:—I. The Sperm Whale; II. the
Right Whale; III. the Fin-Back Whale; IV. the Hump-backed Whale; V. the Razor
Back Whale; VI. the Sulphur Bottom Whale.
BOOK
I. (Folio), CHAPTER I. (Sperm Whale).—This whale, among the English of old
vaguely known as the Trumpa whale, and the Physeter whale, and the Anvil Headed
whale, is the present Cachalot of the French, and the Pottsfich of the Germans,
and the Macrocephalus of the Long Words. He is, without doubt, the largest
inhabitant of the globe; the most formidable of all whales to encounter; the
most majestic in aspect; and lastly, by far the most valuable in commerce; he
being the only creature from which that valuable substance, spermaceti, is
obtained. All his peculiarities will, in many other places, be enlarged upon.
It is chiefly with his name that I now have to do. Philologically considered,
it is absurd. Some centuries ago, when the Sperm whale was almost wholly
unknown in his own proper individuality, and when his oil was only accidentally
obtained from the stranded fish; in those days spermaceti, it would seem, was
popularly supposed to be derived from a creature identical with the one then known
in England as the Greenland or Right Whale. It was the idea also, that this
same spermaceti was that quickening humor of the Greenland Whale which the
first syllable of the word literally expresses. In those times, also,
spermaceti was exceedingly scarce, not being used for light, but only as an
ointment and medicament. It was only to be had from the druggists as you
nowadays buy an ounce of rhubarb. When, as I opine, in the course of time, the
true nature of spermaceti became known, its original name was still retained by
the dealers; no doubt to enhance its value by a notion so strangely significant
of its scarcity. And so the appellation must at last have come to be bestowed
upon the whale from which this spermaceti was really derived.
BOOK
I. (Folio), CHAPTER II. (Right Whale).—In one respect this is the most
venerable of the leviathans, being the one first regularly hunted by man. It
yields the article commonly known as whalebone or baleen; and the oil specially
known as “whale oil,” an inferior article in commerce. Among the fishermen, he
is indiscriminately designated by all the following titles: The Whale; the
Greenland Whale; the Black Whale; the Great Whale; the True Whale; the Right
Whale. There is a deal of obscurity concerning the identity of the species thus
multitudinously baptised. What then is the whale, which I include in the second
species of my Folios? It is the Great Mysticetus of the English naturalists;
the Greenland Whale of the English whalemen; the Baleine Ordinaire of the French
whalemen; the Growlands Walfish of the Swedes. It is the whale which for more
than two centuries past has been hunted by the Dutch and English in the Arctic
seas; it is the whale which the American fishermen have long pursued in the
Indian ocean, on the Brazil Banks, on the Nor' West Coast, and various other
parts of the world, designated by them Right Whale Cruising Grounds.
Some
pretend to see a difference between the Greenland whale of the English and the
right whale of the Americans. But they precisely agree in all their grand
features; nor has there yet been presented a single determinate fact upon which
to ground a radical distinction. It is by endless subdivisions based upon the
most inconclusive differences, that some departments of natural history become
so repellingly intricate. The right whale will be elsewhere treated of at some
length, with reference to elucidating the sperm whale.
BOOK
I. (Folio), CHAPTER III. (Fin-Back).—Under this head I reckon a monster which,
by the various names of Fin-Back, Tall-Spout, and Long-John, has been seen
almost in every sea and is commonly the whale whose distant jet is so often
descried by passengers crossing the Atlantic, in the New York packet-tracks. In
the length he attains, and in his baleen, the Fin-back resembles the right
whale, but is of a less portly girth, and a lighter colour, approaching to
olive. His great lips present a cable-like aspect, formed by the intertwisting,
slanting folds of large wrinkles. His grand distinguishing feature, the fin,
from which he derives his name, is often a conspicuous object. This fin is some
three or four feet long, growing vertically from the hinder part of the back,
of an angular shape, and with a very sharp pointed end. Even if not the
slightest other part of the creature be visible, this isolated fin will, at
times, be seen plainly projecting from the surface. When the sea is moderately
calm, and slightly marked with spherical ripples, and this gnomon-like fin
stands up and casts shadows upon the wrinkled surface, it may well be supposed
that the watery circle surrounding it somewhat resembles a dial, with its style
and wavy hour-lines graved on it. On that Ahaz-dial the shadow often goes back.
The Fin-Back is not gregarious. He seems a whale-hater, as some men are
man-haters. Very shy; always going solitary; unexpectedly rising to the surface
in the remotest and most sullen waters; his straight and single lofty jet
rising like a tall misanthropic spear upon a barren plain; gifted with such
wondrous power and velocity in swimming, as to defy all present pursuit from
man; this leviathan seems the banished and unconquerable Cain of his race,
bearing for his mark that style upon his back. From having the baleen in his
mouth, the Fin-Back is sometimes included with the right whale, among a
theoretic species denominated Whalebone whales, that is, whales with baleen. Of
these so called Whalebone whales, there would seem to be several varieties,
most of which, however, are little known. Broad-nosed whales and beaked whales;
pike-headed whales; bunched whales; under-jawed whales and rostrated whales,
are the fishermen's names for a few sorts.
In
connection with this appellative of “Whalebone whales,” it is of great
importance to mention, that however such a nomenclature may be convenient in
facilitating allusions to some kind of whales, yet it is in vain to attempt a
clear classification of the Leviathan, founded upon either his baleen, or hump,
or fin, or teeth; notwithstanding that those marked parts or features very obviously
seem better adapted to afford the basis for a regular system of Cetology than
any other detached bodily distinctions, which the whale, in his kinds,
presents. How then? The baleen, hump, back-fin, and teeth; these are things
whose peculiarities are indiscriminately dispersed among all sorts of whales,
without any regard to what may be the nature of their structure in other and
more essential particulars. Thus, the sperm whale and the humpbacked whale,
each has a hump; but there the similitude ceases. Then, this same humpbacked
whale and the Greenland whale, each of these has baleen; but there again the
similitude ceases. And it is just the same with the other parts above
mentioned. In various sorts of whales, they form such irregular combinations; or,
in the case of any one of them detached, such an irregular isolation; as
utterly to defy all general methodization formed upon such a basis. On this
rock every one of the whale-naturalists has split.
But
it may possibly be conceived that, in the internal parts of the whale, in his
anatomy—there, at least, we shall be able to hit the right classification. Nay;
what thing, for example, is there in the Greenland whale's anatomy more
striking than his baleen? Yet we have seen that by his baleen it is impossible
correctly to classify the Greenland whale. And if you descend into the bowels
of the various leviathans, why there you will not find distinctions a fiftieth
part as available to the systematizer as those external ones already
enumerated. What then remains? nothing but to take hold of the whales bodily,
in their entire liberal volume, and boldly sort them that way. And this is the
Bibliographical system here adopted; and it is the only one that can possibly
succeed, for it alone is practicable. To proceed.
BOOK
I. (Folio), CHAPTER IV. (Hump Back).—This whale is often seen on the northern
American coast. He has been frequently captured there, and towed into harbor.
He has a great pack on him like a peddler; or you might call him the Elephant
and Castle whale. At any rate, the popular name for him does not sufficiently
distinguish him, since the sperm whale also has a hump though a smaller one.
His oil is not very valuable. He has baleen. He is the most gamesome and
light-hearted of all the whales, making more gay foam and white water generally
than any other of them.
BOOK
I. (Folio), CHAPTER V. (Razor Back).—Of this whale little is known but his
name. I have seen him at a distance off Cape Horn. Of a retiring nature, he
eludes both hunters and philosophers. Though no coward, he has never yet shown
any part of him but his back, which rises in a long sharp ridge. Let him go. I
know little more of him, nor does anybody else.
BOOK
I. (Folio), CHAPTER VI. (Sulphur Bottom).—Another retiring gentleman, with a
brimstone belly, doubtless got by scraping along the Tartarian tiles in some of
his profounder divings. He is seldom seen; at least I have never seen him
except in the remoter southern seas, and then always at too great a distance to
study his countenance. He is never chased; he would run away with rope-walks of
line. Prodigies are told of him. Adieu, Sulphur Bottom! I can say nothing more
that is true of ye, nor can the oldest Nantucketer.
Thus
ends BOOK I. (Folio), and now begins BOOK II. (Octavo).
OCTAVOES.*—These
embrace the whales of middling magnitude, among which present may be
numbered:—I., the Grampus; II., the Black Fish; III., the Narwhale; IV., the
Thrasher; V., the Killer.
*Why
this book of whales is not denominated the Quarto is very plain. Because, while
the whales of this order, though smaller than those of the former order,
nevertheless retain a proportionate likeness to them in figure, yet the
bookbinder's Quarto volume in its dimensioned form does not preserve the shape
of the Folio volume, but the Octavo volume does.
BOOK
II. (Octavo), CHAPTER I. (Grampus).—Though this fish, whose loud sonorous
breathing, or rather blowing, has furnished a proverb to landsmen, is so well
known a denizen of the deep, yet is he not popularly classed among whales. But
possessing all the grand distinctive features of the leviathan, most
naturalists have recognised him for one. He is of moderate octavo size, varying
from fifteen to twenty-five feet in length, and of corresponding dimensions
round the waist. He swims in herds; he is never regularly hunted, though his
oil is considerable in quantity, and pretty good for light. By some fishermen
his approach is regarded as premonitory of the advance of the great sperm
whale.
BOOK
II. (Octavo), CHAPTER II. (Black Fish).—I give the popular fishermen's names
for all these fish, for generally they are the best. Where any name happens to
be vague or inexpressive, I shall say so, and suggest another. I do so now,
touching the Black Fish, so-called, because blackness is the rule among almost
all whales. So, call him the Hyena Whale, if you please. His voracity is well
known, and from the circumstance that the inner angles of his lips are curved
upwards, he carries an everlasting Mephistophelean grin on his face. This whale
averages some sixteen or eighteen feet in length. He is found in almost all
latitudes. He has a peculiar way of showing his dorsal hooked fin in swimming,
which looks something like a Roman nose. When not more profitably employed, the
sperm whale hunters sometimes capture the Hyena whale, to keep up the supply of
cheap oil for domestic employment—as some frugal housekeepers, in the absence
of company, and quite alone by themselves, burn unsavory tallow instead of
odorous wax. Though their blubber is very thin, some of these whales will yield
you upwards of thirty gallons of oil.
BOOK
II. (Octavo), CHAPTER III. (Narwhale), that is, Nostril whale.—Another instance
of a curiously named whale, so named I suppose from his peculiar horn being
originally mistaken for a peaked nose. The creature is some sixteen feet in
length, while its horn averages five feet, though some exceed ten, and even
attain to fifteen feet. Strictly speaking, this horn is but a lengthened tusk,
growing out from the jaw in a line a little depressed from the horizontal. But
it is only found on the sinister side, which has an ill effect, giving its
owner something analogous to the aspect of a clumsy left-handed man. What
precise purpose this ivory horn or lance answers, it would be hard to say. It
does not seem to be used like the blade of the sword-fish and bill-fish; though
some sailors tell me that the Narwhale employs it for a rake in turning over
the bottom of the sea for food. Charley Coffin said it was used for an
ice-piercer; for the Narwhale, rising to the surface of the Polar Sea, and
finding it sheeted with ice, thrusts his horn up, and so breaks through. But
you cannot prove either of these surmises to be correct. My own opinion is,
that however this one-sided horn may really be used by the Narwhale—however
that may be—it would certainly be very convenient to him for a folder in
reading pamphlets. The Narwhale I have heard called the Tusked whale, the
Horned whale, and the Unicorn whale. He is certainly a curious example of the Unicornism
to be found in almost every kingdom of animated nature. From certain cloistered
old authors I have gathered that this same sea-unicorn's horn was in ancient
days regarded as the great antidote against poison, and as such, preparations
of it brought immense prices. It was also distilled to a volatile salts for
fainting ladies, the same way that the horns of the male deer are manufactured
into hartshorn. Originally it was in itself accounted an object of great
curiosity. Black Letter tells me that Sir Martin Frobisher on his return from
that voyage, when Queen Bess did gallantly wave her jewelled hand to him from a
window of Greenwich Palace, as his bold ship sailed down the Thames; “when Sir
Martin returned from that voyage,” saith Black Letter, “on bended knees he
presented to her highness a prodigious long horn of the Narwhale, which for a
long period after hung in the castle at Windsor.” An Irish author avers that
the Earl of Leicester, on bended knees, did likewise present to her highness
another horn, pertaining to a land beast of the unicorn nature.
The
Narwhale has a very picturesque, leopard-like look, being of a milk-white
ground colour, dotted with round and oblong spots of black. His oil is very
superior, clear and fine; but there is little of it, and he is seldom hunted.
He is mostly found in the circumpolar seas.
BOOK
II. (Octavo), CHAPTER IV. (Killer).—Of this whale little is precisely known to
the Nantucketer, and nothing at all to the professed naturalist. From what I
have seen of him at a distance, I should say that he was about the bigness of a
grampus. He is very savage—a sort of Feegee fish. He sometimes takes the great
Folio whales by the lip, and hangs there like a leech, till the mighty brute is
worried to death. The Killer is never hunted. I never heard what sort of oil he
has. Exception might be taken to the name bestowed upon this whale, on the
ground of its indistinctness. For we are all killers, on land and on sea;
Bonapartes and Sharks included.
BOOK
II. (Octavo), CHAPTER V. (Thrasher).—This gentleman is famous for his tail,
which he uses for a ferule in thrashing his foes. He mounts the Folio whale's
back, and as he swims, he works his passage by flogging him; as some
schoolmasters get along in the world by a similar process. Still less is known
of the Thrasher than of the Killer. Both are outlaws, even in the lawless seas.
Thus
ends BOOK II. (Octavo), and begins BOOK III. (Duodecimo).
DUODECIMOES.—These
include the smaller whales. I. The Huzza Porpoise. II. The Algerine Porpoise.
III. The Mealy-mouthed Porpoise.
To
those who have not chanced specially to study the subject, it may possibly seem
strange, that fishes not commonly exceeding four or five feet should be
marshalled among WHALES—a word, which, in the popular sense, always conveys an
idea of hugeness. But the creatures set down above as Duodecimoes are
infallibly whales, by the terms of my definition of what a whale is—i.e. a
spouting fish, with a horizontal tail.
BOOK
III. (Duodecimo), CHAPTER 1. (Huzza Porpoise).—This is the common porpoise
found almost all over the globe. The name is of my own bestowal; for there are
more than one sort of porpoises, and something must be done to distinguish
them. I call him thus, because he always swims in hilarious shoals, which upon
the broad sea keep tossing themselves to heaven like caps in a Fourth-of-July
crowd. Their appearance is generally hailed with delight by the mariner. Full
of fine spirits, they invariably come from the breezy billows to windward. They
are the lads that always live before the wind. They are accounted a lucky omen.
If you yourself can withstand three cheers at beholding these vivacious fish,
then heaven help ye; the spirit of godly gamesomeness is not in ye. A well-fed,
plump Huzza Porpoise will yield you one good gallon of good oil. But the fine
and delicate fluid extracted from his jaws is exceedingly valuable. It is in
request among jewellers and watchmakers. Sailors put it on their hones.
Porpoise meat is good eating, you know. It may never have occurred to you that
a porpoise spouts. Indeed, his spout is so small that it is not very readily
discernible. But the next time you have a chance, watch him; and you will then
see the great Sperm whale himself in miniature.
BOOK
III. (Duodecimo), CHAPTER II. (Algerine Porpoise).—A pirate. Very savage. He is
only found, I think, in the Pacific. He is somewhat larger than the Huzza
Porpoise, but much of the same general make. Provoke him, and he will buckle to
a shark. I have lowered for him many times, but never yet saw him captured.
BOOK
III. (Duodecimo), CHAPTER III. (Mealy-mouthed Porpoise).—The largest kind of
Porpoise; and only found in the Pacific, so far as it is known. The only
English name, by which he has hitherto been designated, is that of the
fishers—Right-Whale Porpoise, from the circumstance that he is chiefly found in
the vicinity of that Folio. In shape, he differs in some degree from the Huzza
Porpoise, being of a less rotund and jolly girth; indeed, he is of quite a neat
and gentleman-like figure. He has no fins on his back (most other porpoises
have), he has a lovely tail, and sentimental Indian eyes of a hazel hue. But
his mealy-mouth spoils all. Though his entire back down to his side fins is of
a deep sable, yet a boundary line, distinct as the mark in a ship's hull,
called the “bright waist,” that line streaks him from stem to stern, with two
separate colours, black above and white below. The white comprises part of his
head, and the whole of his mouth, which makes him look as if he had just
escaped from a felonious visit to a meal-bag. A most mean and mealy aspect! His
oil is much like that of the common porpoise.
*
* * * * *
Beyond
the DUODECIMO, this system does not proceed, inasmuch as the Porpoise is the
smallest of the whales. Above, you have all the Leviathans of note. But there
are a rabble of uncertain, fugitive, half-fabulous whales, which, as an
American whaleman, I know by reputation, but not personally. I shall enumerate
them by their fore-castle appellations; for possibly such a list may be
valuable to future investigators, who may complete what I have here but begun.
If any of the following whales, shall hereafter be caught and marked, then he
can readily be incorporated into this System, according to his Folio, Octavo,
or Duodecimo magnitude:—The Bottle-Nose Whale; the Junk Whale; the
Pudding-Headed Whale; the Cape Whale; the Leading Whale; the Cannon Whale; the
Scragg Whale; the Coppered Whale; the Elephant Whale; the Iceberg Whale; the
Quog Whale; the Blue Whale; etc. From Icelandic, Dutch, and old English authorities,
there might be quoted other lists of uncertain whales, blessed with all manner
of uncouth names. But I omit them as altogether obsolete; and can hardly help
suspecting them for mere sounds, full of Leviathanism, but signifying nothing.
Finally:
It was stated at the outset, that this system would not be here, and at once,
perfected. You cannot but plainly see that I have kept my word. But I now leave
my cetological System standing thus unfinished, even as the great Cathedral of
Cologne was left, with the crane still standing upon the top of the uncompleted
tower. For small erections may be finished by their first architects; grand
ones, true ones, ever leave the copestone to posterity. God keep me from ever
completing anything. This whole book is but a draught—nay, but the draught of a
draught. Oh, Time, Strength, Cash, and Patience!
CHAPTER
33. The Specksnyder.
Concerning
the officers of the whale-craft, this seems as good a place as any to set down
a little domestic peculiarity on ship-board, arising from the existence of the
harpooneer class of officers, a class unknown of course in any other marine
than the whale-fleet.
The
large importance attached to the harpooneer's vocation is evinced by the fact,
that originally in the old Dutch Fishery, two centuries and more ago, the
command of a whale ship was not wholly lodged in the person now called the
captain, but was divided between him and an officer called the Specksnyder.
Literally this word means Fat-Cutter; usage, however, in time made it
equivalent to Chief Harpooneer. In those days, the captain's authority was
restricted to the navigation and general management of the vessel; while over
the whale-hunting department and all its concerns, the Specksnyder or Chief
Harpooneer reigned supreme. In the British Greenland Fishery, under the
corrupted title of Specksioneer, this old Dutch official is still retained, but
his former dignity is sadly abridged. At present he ranks simply as senior
Harpooneer; and as such, is but one of the captain's more inferior subalterns.
Nevertheless, as upon the good conduct of the harpooneers the success of a
whaling voyage largely depends, and since in the American Fishery he is not
only an important officer in the boat, but under certain circumstances (night
watches on a whaling ground) the command of the ship's deck is also his;
therefore the grand political maxim of the sea demands, that he should
nominally live apart from the men before the mast, and be in some way
distinguished as their professional superior; though always, by them,
familiarly regarded as their social equal.
Now,
the grand distinction drawn between officer and man at sea, is this—the first
lives aft, the last forward. Hence, in whale-ships and merchantmen alike, the
mates have their quarters with the captain; and so, too, in most of the
American whalers the harpooneers are lodged in the after part of the ship. That
is to say, they take their meals in the captain's cabin, and sleep in a place
indirectly communicating with it.
Though
the long period of a Southern whaling voyage (by far the longest of all voyages
now or ever made by man), the peculiar perils of it, and the community of
interest prevailing among a company, all of whom, high or low, depend for their
profits, not upon fixed wages, but upon their common luck, together with their
common vigilance, intrepidity, and hard work; though all these things do in
some cases tend to beget a less rigorous discipline than in merchantmen
generally; yet, never mind how much like an old Mesopotamian family these
whalemen may, in some primitive instances, live together; for all that, the
punctilious externals, at least, of the quarter-deck are seldom materially
relaxed, and in no instance done away. Indeed, many are the Nantucket ships in which
you will see the skipper parading his quarter-deck with an elated grandeur not
surpassed in any military navy; nay, extorting almost as much outward homage as
if he wore the imperial purple, and not the shabbiest of pilot-cloth.
And
though of all men the moody captain of the Pequod was the least given to that
sort of shallowest assumption; and though the only homage he ever exacted, was
implicit, instantaneous obedience; though he required no man to remove the
shoes from his feet ere stepping upon the quarter-deck; and though there were
times when, owing to peculiar circumstances connected with events hereafter to
be detailed, he addressed them in unusual terms, whether of condescension or in
terrorem, or otherwise; yet even Captain Ahab was by no means unobservant of
the paramount forms and usages of the sea.
Nor,
perhaps, will it fail to be eventually perceived, that behind those forms and
usages, as it were, he sometimes masked himself; incidentally making use of
them for other and more private ends than they were legitimately intended to
subserve. That certain sultanism of his brain, which had otherwise in a good
degree remained unmanifested; through those forms that same sultanism became
incarnate in an irresistible dictatorship. For be a man's intellectual
superiority what it will, it can never assume the practical, available
supremacy over other men, without the aid of some sort of external arts and
entrenchments, always, in themselves, more or less paltry and base. This it is,
that for ever keeps God's true princes of the Empire from the world's hustings;
and leaves the highest honors that this air can give, to those men who become
famous more through their infinite inferiority to the choice hidden handful of
the Divine Inert, than through their undoubted superiority over the dead level
of the mass. Such large virtue lurks in these small things when extreme
political superstitions invest them, that in some royal instances even to idiot
imbecility they have imparted potency. But when, as in the case of Nicholas the
Czar, the ringed crown of geographical empire encircles an imperial brain;
then, the plebeian herds crouch abased before the tremendous centralization.
Nor, will the tragic dramatist who would depict mortal indomitableness in its
fullest sweep and direct swing, ever forget a hint, incidentally so important
in his art, as the one now alluded to.
But
Ahab, my Captain, still moves before me in all his Nantucket grimness and
shagginess; and in this episode touching Emperors and Kings, I must not conceal
that I have only to do with a poor old whale-hunter like him; and, therefore,
all outward majestical trappings and housings are denied me. Oh, Ahab! what
shall be grand in thee, it must needs be plucked at from the skies, and dived
for in the deep, and featured in the unbodied air!
CHAPTER
34. The Cabin-Table.
It
is noon; and Dough-Boy, the steward, thrusting his pale loaf-of-bread face from
the cabin-scuttle, announces dinner to his lord and master; who, sitting in the
lee quarter-boat, has just been taking an observation of the sun; and is now
mutely reckoning the latitude on the smooth, medallion-shaped tablet, reserved
for that daily purpose on the upper part of his ivory leg. From his complete
inattention to the tidings, you would think that moody Ahab had not heard his
menial. But presently, catching hold of the mizen shrouds, he swings himself to
the deck, and in an even, unexhilarated voice, saying, “Dinner, Mr. Starbuck,”
disappears into the cabin.
When
the last echo of his sultan's step has died away, and Starbuck, the first Emir,
has every reason to suppose that he is seated, then Starbuck rouses from his
quietude, takes a few turns along the planks, and, after a grave peep into the
binnacle, says, with some touch of pleasantness, “Dinner, Mr. Stubb,” and
descends the scuttle. The second Emir lounges about the rigging awhile, and
then slightly shaking the main brace, to see whether it will be all right with
that important rope, he likewise takes up the old burden, and with a rapid
“Dinner, Mr. Flask,” follows after his predecessors.
But
the third Emir, now seeing himself all alone on the quarter-deck, seems to feel
relieved from some curious restraint; for, tipping all sorts of knowing winks
in all sorts of directions, and kicking off his shoes, he strikes into a sharp
but noiseless squall of a hornpipe right over the Grand Turk's head; and then,
by a dexterous sleight, pitching his cap up into the mizentop for a shelf, he
goes down rollicking so far at least as he remains visible from the deck,
reversing all other processions, by bringing up the rear with music. But ere
stepping into the cabin doorway below, he pauses, ships a new face altogether,
and, then, independent, hilarious little Flask enters King Ahab's presence, in
the character of Abjectus, or the Slave.
It
is not the least among the strange things bred by the intense artificialness of
sea-usages, that while in the open air of the deck some officers will, upon
provocation, bear themselves boldly and defyingly enough towards their
commander; yet, ten to one, let those very officers the next moment go down to
their customary dinner in that same commander's cabin, and straightway their
inoffensive, not to say deprecatory and humble air towards him, as he sits at
the head of the table; this is marvellous, sometimes most comical. Wherefore
this difference? A problem? Perhaps not. To have been Belshazzar, King of
Babylon; and to have been Belshazzar, not haughtily but courteously, therein
certainly must have been some touch of mundane grandeur. But he who in the
rightly regal and intelligent spirit presides over his own private dinner-table
of invited guests, that man's unchallenged power and dominion of individual
influence for the time; that man's royalty of state transcends Belshazzar's,
for Belshazzar was not the greatest. Who has but once dined his friends, has
tasted what it is to be Cæsar. It is a witchery of social czarship which there
is no withstanding. Now, if to this consideration you superadd the official
supremacy of a ship-master, then, by inference, you will derive the cause of
that peculiarity of sea-life just mentioned.
Over
his ivory-inlaid table, Ahab presided like a mute, maned sea-lion on the white
coral beach, surrounded by his warlike but still deferential cubs. In his own
proper turn, each officer waited to be served. They were as little children
before Ahab; and yet, in Ahab, there seemed not to lurk the smallest social
arrogance. With one mind, their intent eyes all fastened upon the old man's
knife, as he carved the chief dish before him. I do not suppose that for the
world they would have profaned that moment with the slightest observation, even
upon so neutral a topic as the weather. No! And when reaching out his knife and
fork, between which the slice of beef was locked, Ahab thereby motioned
Starbuck's plate towards him, the mate received his meat as though receiving
alms; and cut it tenderly; and a little started if, perchance, the knife grazed
against the plate; and chewed it noiselessly; and swallowed it, not without
circumspection. For, like the Coronation banquet at Frankfort, where the German
Emperor profoundly dines with the seven Imperial Electors, so these cabin meals
were somehow solemn meals, eaten in awful silence; and yet at table old Ahab
forbade not conversation; only he himself was dumb. What a relief it was to
choking Stubb, when a rat made a sudden racket in the hold below. And poor
little Flask, he was the youngest son, and little boy of this weary family
party. His were the shinbones of the saline beef; his would have been the
drumsticks. For Flask to have presumed to help himself, this must have seemed
to him tantamount to larceny in the first degree. Had he helped himself at that
table, doubtless, never more would he have been able to hold his head up in
this honest world; nevertheless, strange to say, Ahab never forbade him. And
had Flask helped himself, the chances were Ahab had never so much as noticed
it. Least of all, did Flask presume to help himself to butter. Whether he
thought the owners of the ship denied it to him, on account of its clotting his
clear, sunny complexion; or whether he deemed that, on so long a voyage in such
marketless waters, butter was at a premium, and therefore was not for him, a
subaltern; however it was, Flask, alas! was a butterless man!
Another
thing. Flask was the last person down at the dinner, and Flask is the first man
up. Consider! For hereby Flask's dinner was badly jammed in point of time.
Starbuck and Stubb both had the start of him; and yet they also have the
privilege of lounging in the rear. If Stubb even, who is but a peg higher than
Flask, happens to have but a small appetite, and soon shows symptoms of
concluding his repast, then Flask must bestir himself, he will not get more
than three mouthfuls that day; for it is against holy usage for Stubb to
precede Flask to the deck. Therefore it was that Flask once admitted in
private, that ever since he had arisen to the dignity of an officer, from that
moment he had never known what it was to be otherwise than hungry, more or
less. For what he ate did not so much relieve his hunger, as keep it immortal
in him. Peace and satisfaction, thought Flask, have for ever departed from my
stomach. I am an officer; but, how I wish I could fish a bit of old-fashioned
beef in the forecastle, as I used to when I was before the mast. There's the
fruits of promotion now; there's the vanity of glory: there's the insanity of
life! Besides, if it were so that any mere sailor of the Pequod had a grudge
against Flask in Flask's official capacity, all that sailor had to do, in order
to obtain ample vengeance, was to go aft at dinner-time, and get a peep at
Flask through the cabin sky-light, sitting silly and dumfoundered before awful
Ahab.
Now,
Ahab and his three mates formed what may be called the first table in the
Pequod's cabin. After their departure, taking place in inverted order to their
arrival, the canvas cloth was cleared, or rather was restored to some hurried
order by the pallid steward. And then the three harpooneers were bidden to the
feast, they being its residuary legatees. They made a sort of temporary
servants' hall of the high and mighty cabin.
In
strange contrast to the hardly tolerable constraint and nameless invisible
domineerings of the captain's table, was the entire care-free license and ease,
the almost frantic democracy of those inferior fellows the harpooneers. While
their masters, the mates, seemed afraid of the sound of the hinges of their own
jaws, the harpooneers chewed their food with such a relish that there was a
report to it. They dined like lords; they filled their bellies like Indian
ships all day loading with spices. Such portentous appetites had Queequeg and
Tashtego, that to fill out the vacancies made by the previous repast, often the
pale Dough-Boy was fain to bring on a great baron of salt-junk, seemingly
quarried out of the solid ox. And if he were not lively about it, if he did not
go with a nimble hop-skip-and-jump, then Tashtego had an ungentlemanly way of
accelerating him by darting a fork at his back, harpoon-wise. And once Daggoo,
seized with a sudden humor, assisted Dough-Boy's memory by snatching him up
bodily, and thrusting his head into a great empty wooden trencher, while
Tashtego, knife in hand, began laying out the circle preliminary to scalping
him. He was naturally a very nervous, shuddering sort of little fellow, this
bread-faced steward; the progeny of a bankrupt baker and a hospital nurse. And
what with the standing spectacle of the black terrific Ahab, and the periodical
tumultuous visitations of these three savages, Dough-Boy's whole life was one
continual lip-quiver. Commonly, after seeing the harpooneers furnished with all
things they demanded, he would escape from their clutches into his little
pantry adjoining, and fearfully peep out at them through the blinds of its
door, till all was over.
It
was a sight to see Queequeg seated over against Tashtego, opposing his filed
teeth to the Indian's: crosswise to them, Daggoo seated on the floor, for a
bench would have brought his hearse-plumed head to the low carlines; at every
motion of his colossal limbs, making the low cabin framework to shake, as when
an African elephant goes passenger in a ship. But for all this, the great negro
was wonderfully abstemious, not to say dainty. It seemed hardly possible that
by such comparatively small mouthfuls he could keep up the vitality diffused
through so broad, baronial, and superb a person. But, doubtless, this noble
savage fed strong and drank deep of the abounding element of air; and through
his dilated nostrils snuffed in the sublime life of the worlds. Not by beef or
by bread, are giants made or nourished. But Queequeg, he had a mortal, barbaric
smack of the lip in eating—an ugly sound enough—so much so, that the trembling
Dough-Boy almost looked to see whether any marks of teeth lurked in his own
lean arms. And when he would hear Tashtego singing out for him to produce
himself, that his bones might be picked, the simple-witted steward all but
shattered the crockery hanging round him in the pantry, by his sudden fits of
the palsy. Nor did the whetstone which the harpooneers carried in their
pockets, for their lances and other weapons; and with which whetstones, at
dinner, they would ostentatiously sharpen their knives; that grating sound did
not at all tend to tranquillize poor Dough-Boy. How could he forget that in his
Island days, Queequeg, for one, must certainly have been guilty of some
murderous, convivial indiscretions. Alas! Dough-Boy! hard fares the white
waiter who waits upon cannibals. Not a napkin should he carry on his arm, but a
buckler. In good time, though, to his great delight, the three salt-sea
warriors would rise and depart; to his credulous, fable-mongering ears, all
their martial bones jingling in them at every step, like Moorish scimetars in
scabbards.
But,
though these barbarians dined in the cabin, and nominally lived there; still,
being anything but sedentary in their habits, they were scarcely ever in it
except at mealtimes, and just before sleeping-time, when they passed through it
to their own peculiar quarters.
In
this one matter, Ahab seemed no exception to most American whale captains, who,
as a set, rather incline to the opinion that by rights the ship's cabin belongs
to them; and that it is by courtesy alone that anybody else is, at any time,
permitted there. So that, in real truth, the mates and harpooneers of the
Pequod might more properly be said to have lived out of the cabin than in it.
For when they did enter it, it was something as a street-door enters a house;
turning inwards for a moment, only to be turned out the next; and, as a
permanent thing, residing in the open air. Nor did they lose much hereby; in
the cabin was no companionship; socially, Ahab was inaccessible. Though
nominally included in the census of Christendom, he was still an alien to it.
He lived in the world, as the last of the Grisly Bears lived in settled
Missouri. And as when Spring and Summer had departed, that wild Logan of the
woods, burying himself in the hollow of a tree, lived out the winter there,
sucking his own paws; so, in his inclement, howling old age, Ahab's soul, shut
up in the caved trunk of his body, there fed upon the sullen paws of its gloom!
CHAPTER
35. The Mast-Head.
It
was during the more pleasant weather, that in due rotation with the other
seamen my first mast-head came round.
In
most American whalemen the mast-heads are manned almost simultaneously with the
vessel's leaving her port; even though she may have fifteen thousand miles, and
more, to sail ere reaching her proper cruising ground. And if, after a three,
four, or five years' voyage she is drawing nigh home with anything empty in
her—say, an empty vial even—then, her mast-heads are kept manned to the last;
and not till her skysail-poles sail in among the spires of the port, does she
altogether relinquish the hope of capturing one whale more.
Now,
as the business of standing mast-heads, ashore or afloat, is a very ancient and
interesting one, let us in some measure expatiate here. I take it, that the
earliest standers of mast-heads were the old Egyptians; because, in all my
researches, I find none prior to them. For though their progenitors, the
builders of Babel, must doubtless, by their tower, have intended to rear the
loftiest mast-head in all Asia, or Africa either; yet (ere the final truck was
put to it) as that great stone mast of theirs may be said to have gone by the
board, in the dread gale of God's wrath; therefore, we cannot give these Babel
builders priority over the Egyptians. And that the Egyptians were a nation of
mast-head standers, is an assertion based upon the general belief among
archæologists, that the first pyramids were founded for astronomical purposes:
a theory singularly supported by the peculiar stair-like formation of all four
sides of those edifices; whereby, with prodigious long upliftings of their
legs, those old astronomers were wont to mount to the apex, and sing out for
new stars; even as the look-outs of a modern ship sing out for a sail, or a
whale just bearing in sight. In Saint Stylites, the famous Christian hermit of
old times, who built him a lofty stone pillar in the desert and spent the whole
latter portion of his life on its summit, hoisting his food from the ground
with a tackle; in him we have a remarkable instance of a dauntless
stander-of-mast-heads; who was not to be driven from his place by fogs or
frosts, rain, hail, or sleet; but valiantly facing everything out to the last,
literally died at his post. Of modern standers-of-mast-heads we have but a
lifeless set; mere stone, iron, and bronze men; who, though well capable of
facing out a stiff gale, are still entirely incompetent to the business of
singing out upon discovering any strange sight. There is Napoleon; who, upon
the top of the column of Vendome, stands with arms folded, some one hundred and
fifty feet in the air; careless, now, who rules the decks below; whether Louis
Philippe, Louis Blanc, or Louis the Devil. Great Washington, too, stands high
aloft on his towering main-mast in Baltimore, and like one of Hercules'
pillars, his column marks that point of human grandeur beyond which few mortals
will go. Admiral Nelson, also, on a capstan of gun-metal, stands his mast-head
in Trafalgar Square; and ever when most obscured by that London smoke, token is
yet given that a hidden hero is there; for where there is smoke, must be fire.
But neither great Washington, nor Napoleon, nor Nelson, will answer a single
hail from below, however madly invoked to befriend by their counsels the
distracted decks upon which they gaze; however it may be surmised, that their
spirits penetrate through the thick haze of the future, and descry what shoals
and what rocks must be shunned.
It
may seem unwarrantable to couple in any respect the mast-head standers of the
land with those of the sea; but that in truth it is not so, is plainly evinced
by an item for which Obed Macy, the sole historian of Nantucket, stands
accountable. The worthy Obed tells us, that in the early times of the whale
fishery, ere ships were regularly launched in pursuit of the game, the people
of that island erected lofty spars along the sea-coast, to which the look-outs
ascended by means of nailed cleats, something as fowls go upstairs in a
hen-house. A few years ago this same plan was adopted by the Bay whalemen of
New Zealand, who, upon descrying the game, gave notice to the ready-manned
boats nigh the beach. But this custom has now become obsolete; turn we then to
the one proper mast-head, that of a whale-ship at sea. The three mast-heads are
kept manned from sun-rise to sun-set; the seamen taking their regular turns (as
at the helm), and relieving each other every two hours. In the serene weather
of the tropics it is exceedingly pleasant the mast-head; nay, to a dreamy
meditative man it is delightful. There you stand, a hundred feet above the
silent decks, striding along the deep, as if the masts were gigantic stilts,
while beneath you and between your legs, as it were, swim the hugest monsters
of the sea, even as ships once sailed between the boots of the famous Colossus
at old Rhodes. There you stand, lost in the infinite series of the sea, with
nothing ruffled but the waves. The tranced ship indolently rolls; the drowsy
trade winds blow; everything resolves you into languor. For the most part, in
this tropic whaling life, a sublime uneventfulness invests you; you hear no
news; read no gazettes; extras with startling accounts of commonplaces never
delude you into unnecessary excitements; you hear of no domestic afflictions;
bankrupt securities; fall of stocks; are never troubled with the thought of
what you shall have for dinner—for all your meals for three years and more are
snugly stowed in casks, and your bill of fare is immutable.
In
one of those southern whalesmen, on a long three or four years' voyage, as
often happens, the sum of the various hours you spend at the mast-head would
amount to several entire months. And it is much to be deplored that the place
to which you devote so considerable a portion of the whole term of your natural
life, should be so sadly destitute of anything approaching to a cosy inhabitiveness,
or adapted to breed a comfortable localness of feeling, such as pertains to a
bed, a hammock, a hearse, a sentry box, a pulpit, a coach, or any other of
those small and snug contrivances in which men temporarily isolate themselves.
Your most usual point of perch is the head of the t' gallant-mast, where you
stand upon two thin parallel sticks (almost peculiar to whalemen) called the t'
gallant cross-trees. Here, tossed about by the sea, the beginner feels about as
cosy as he would standing on a bull's horns. To be sure, in cold weather you
may carry your house aloft with you, in the shape of a watch-coat; but properly
speaking the thickest watch-coat is no more of a house than the unclad body;
for as the soul is glued inside of its fleshy tabernacle, and cannot freely
move about in it, nor even move out of it, without running great risk of
perishing (like an ignorant pilgrim crossing the snowy Alps in winter); so a
watch-coat is not so much of a house as it is a mere envelope, or additional
skin encasing you. You cannot put a shelf or chest of drawers in your body, and
no more can you make a convenient closet of your watch-coat.
Concerning
all this, it is much to be deplored that the mast-heads of a southern whale
ship are unprovided with those enviable little tents or pulpits, called
crow's-nests, in which the look-outs of a Greenland whaler are protected from
the inclement weather of the frozen seas. In the fireside narrative of Captain
Sleet, entitled “A Voyage among the Icebergs, in quest of the Greenland Whale,
and incidentally for the re-discovery of the Lost Icelandic Colonies of Old
Greenland;” in this admirable volume, all standers of mast-heads are furnished
with a charmingly circumstantial account of the then recently invented
crow's-nest of the Glacier, which was the name of Captain Sleet's good craft.
He called it the Sleet's crow's-nest, in honor of himself; he being the
original inventor and patentee, and free from all ridiculous false delicacy,
and holding that if we call our own children after our own names (we fathers
being the original inventors and patentees), so likewise should we denominate
after ourselves any other apparatus we may beget. In shape, the Sleet's
crow's-nest is something like a large tierce or pipe; it is open above,
however, where it is furnished with a movable side-screen to keep to windward
of your head in a hard gale. Being fixed on the summit of the mast, you ascend
into it through a little trap-hatch in the bottom. On the after side, or side
next the stern of the ship, is a comfortable seat, with a locker underneath for
umbrellas, comforters, and coats. In front is a leather rack, in which to keep
your speaking trumpet, pipe, telescope, and other nautical conveniences. When
Captain Sleet in person stood his mast-head in this crow's-nest of his, he
tells us that he always had a rifle with him (also fixed in the rack), together
with a powder flask and shot, for the purpose of popping off the stray
narwhales, or vagrant sea unicorns infesting those waters; for you cannot
successfully shoot at them from the deck owing to the resistance of the water,
but to shoot down upon them is a very different thing. Now, it was plainly a
labor of love for Captain Sleet to describe, as he does, all the little
detailed conveniences of his crow's-nest; but though he so enlarges upon many
of these, and though he treats us to a very scientific account of his
experiments in this crow's-nest, with a small compass he kept there for the
purpose of counteracting the errors resulting from what is called the “local
attraction” of all binnacle magnets; an error ascribable to the horizontal
vicinity of the iron in the ship's planks, and in the Glacier's case, perhaps,
to there having been so many broken-down blacksmiths among her crew; I say, that
though the Captain is very discreet and scientific here, yet, for all his
learned “binnacle deviations,” “azimuth compass observations,” and “approximate
errors,” he knows very well, Captain Sleet, that he was not so much immersed in
those profound magnetic meditations, as to fail being attracted occasionally
towards that well replenished little case-bottle, so nicely tucked in on one
side of his crow's nest, within easy reach of his hand. Though, upon the whole,
I greatly admire and even love the brave, the honest, and learned Captain; yet
I take it very ill of him that he should so utterly ignore that case-bottle,
seeing what a faithful friend and comforter it must have been, while with
mittened fingers and hooded head he was studying the mathematics aloft there in
that bird's nest within three or four perches of the pole.
But
if we Southern whale-fishers are not so snugly housed aloft as Captain Sleet
and his Greenlandmen were; yet that disadvantage is greatly counter-balanced by
the widely contrasting serenity of those seductive seas in which we South
fishers mostly float. For one, I used to lounge up the rigging very leisurely,
resting in the top to have a chat with Queequeg, or any one else off duty whom
I might find there; then ascending a little way further, and throwing a lazy
leg over the top-sail yard, take a preliminary view of the watery pastures, and
so at last mount to my ultimate destination.
Let
me make a clean breast of it here, and frankly admit that I kept but sorry
guard. With the problem of the universe revolving in me, how could I—being left
completely to myself at such a thought-engendering altitude—how could I but
lightly hold my obligations to observe all whale-ships' standing orders, “Keep
your weather eye open, and sing out every time.”
And
let me in this place movingly admonish you, ye ship-owners of Nantucket! Beware
of enlisting in your vigilant fisheries any lad with lean brow and hollow eye;
given to unseasonable meditativeness; and who offers to ship with the Phædon
instead of Bowditch in his head. Beware of such an one, I say; your whales must
be seen before they can be killed; and this sunken-eyed young Platonist will
tow you ten wakes round the world, and never make you one pint of sperm the
richer. Nor are these monitions at all unneeded. For nowadays, the
whale-fishery furnishes an asylum for many romantic, melancholy, and
absent-minded young men, disgusted with the carking cares of earth, and seeking
sentiment in tar and blubber. Childe Harold not unfrequently perches himself upon
the mast-head of some luckless disappointed whale-ship, and in moody phrase
ejaculates:—
“Roll on, thou deep and dark blue ocean, roll!
Ten thousand blubber-hunters sweep over thee in vain.”
Very
often do the captains of such ships take those absent-minded young philosophers
to task, upbraiding them with not feeling sufficient “interest” in the voyage;
half-hinting that they are so hopelessly lost to all honorable ambition, as
that in their secret souls they would rather not see whales than otherwise. But
all in vain; those young Platonists have a notion that their vision is
imperfect; they are short-sighted; what use, then, to strain the visual nerve?
They have left their opera-glasses at home.
“Why,
thou monkey,” said a harpooneer to one of these lads, “we've been cruising now
hard upon three years, and thou hast not raised a whale yet. Whales are scarce
as hen's teeth whenever thou art up here.” Perhaps they were; or perhaps there
might have been shoals of them in the far horizon; but lulled into such an
opium-like listlessness of vacant, unconscious reverie is this absent-minded
youth by the blending cadence of waves with thoughts, that at last he loses his
identity; takes the mystic ocean at his feet for the visible image of that deep,
blue, bottomless soul, pervading mankind and nature; and every strange,
half-seen, gliding, beautiful thing that eludes him; every dimly-discovered,
uprising fin of some undiscernible form, seems to him the embodiment of those
elusive thoughts that only people the soul by continually flitting through it.
In this enchanted mood, thy spirit ebbs away to whence it came; becomes
diffused through time and space; like Cranmer's sprinkled Pantheistic ashes,
forming at last a part of every shore the round globe over.
There
is no life in thee, now, except that rocking life imparted by a gently rolling
ship; by her, borrowed from the sea; by the sea, from the inscrutable tides of
God. But while this sleep, this dream is on ye, move your foot or hand an inch;
slip your hold at all; and your identity comes back in horror. Over Descartian
vortices you hover. And perhaps, at mid-day, in the fairest weather, with one
half-throttled shriek you drop through that transparent air into the summer
sea, no more to rise for ever. Heed it well, ye Pantheists!
CHAPTER
36. The Quarter-Deck.
(Enter
Ahab: Then, all.)
It
was not a great while after the affair of the pipe, that one morning shortly
after breakfast, Ahab, as was his wont, ascended the cabin-gangway to the deck.
There most sea-captains usually walk at that hour, as country gentlemen, after
the same meal, take a few turns in the garden.
Soon
his steady, ivory stride was heard, as to and fro he paced his old rounds, upon
planks so familiar to his tread, that they were all over dented, like
geological stones, with the peculiar mark of his walk. Did you fixedly gaze,
too, upon that ribbed and dented brow; there also, you would see still stranger
foot-prints—the foot-prints of his one unsleeping, ever-pacing thought.
But
on the occasion in question, those dents looked deeper, even as his nervous
step that morning left a deeper mark. And, so full of his thought was Ahab,
that at every uniform turn that he made, now at the main-mast and now at the
binnacle, you could almost see that thought turn in him as he turned, and pace
in him as he paced; so completely possessing him, indeed, that it all but
seemed the inward mould of every outer movement.
“D'ye
mark him, Flask?” whispered Stubb; “the chick that's in him pecks the shell.
'Twill soon be out.”
The
hours wore on;—Ahab now shut up within his cabin; anon, pacing the deck, with
the same intense bigotry of purpose in his aspect.
It
drew near the close of day. Suddenly he came to a halt by the bulwarks, and
inserting his bone leg into the auger-hole there, and with one hand grasping a
shroud, he ordered Starbuck to send everybody aft.
“Sir!”
said the mate, astonished at an order seldom or never given on ship-board
except in some extraordinary case.
“Send
everybody aft,” repeated Ahab. “Mast-heads, there! come down!”
When
the entire ship's company were assembled, and with curious and not wholly
unapprehensive faces, were eyeing him, for he looked not unlike the weather
horizon when a storm is coming up, Ahab, after rapidly glancing over the
bulwarks, and then darting his eyes among the crew, started from his
standpoint; and as though not a soul were nigh him resumed his heavy turns upon
the deck. With bent head and half-slouched hat he continued to pace, unmindful
of the wondering whispering among the men; till Stubb cautiously whispered to
Flask, that Ahab must have summoned them there for the purpose of witnessing a
pedestrian feat. But this did not last long. Vehemently pausing, he cried:—
“What
do ye do when ye see a whale, men?”
“Sing
out for him!” was the impulsive rejoinder from a score of clubbed voices.
“Good!”
cried Ahab, with a wild approval in his tones; observing the hearty animation
into which his unexpected question had so magnetically thrown them.
“And
what do ye next, men?”
“Lower
away, and after him!”
“And
what tune is it ye pull to, men?”
“A
dead whale or a stove boat!”
More
and more strangely and fiercely glad and approving, grew the countenance of the
old man at every shout; while the mariners began to gaze curiously at each
other, as if marvelling how it was that they themselves became so excited at
such seemingly purposeless questions.
But,
they were all eagerness again, as Ahab, now half-revolving in his pivot-hole,
with one hand reaching high up a shroud, and tightly, almost convulsively
grasping it, addressed them thus:—
“All
ye mast-headers have before now heard me give orders about a white whale. Look
ye! d'ye see this Spanish ounce of gold?”—holding up a broad bright coin to the
sun—“it is a sixteen dollar piece, men. D'ye see it? Mr. Starbuck, hand me yon
top-maul.”
While
the mate was getting the hammer, Ahab, without speaking, was slowly rubbing the
gold piece against the skirts of his jacket, as if to heighten its lustre, and
without using any words was meanwhile lowly humming to himself, producing a
sound so strangely muffled and inarticulate that it seemed the mechanical
humming of the wheels of his vitality in him.
Receiving
the top-maul from Starbuck, he advanced towards the main-mast with the hammer
uplifted in one hand, exhibiting the gold with the other, and with a high
raised voice exclaiming: “Whosoever of ye raises me a white-headed whale with a
wrinkled brow and a crooked jaw; whosoever of ye raises me that white-headed
whale, with three holes punctured in his starboard fluke—look ye, whosoever of
ye raises me that same white whale, he shall have this gold ounce, my boys!”
“Huzza!
huzza!” cried the seamen, as with swinging tarpaulins they hailed the act of
nailing the gold to the mast.
“It's
a white whale, I say,” resumed Ahab, as he threw down the topmaul; “a white
whale. Skin your eyes for him, men; look sharp for white water; if ye see but a
bubble, sing out.”
All
this while Tashtego, Daggoo, and Queequeg had looked on with even more intense
interest and surprise than the rest, and at the mention of the wrinkled brow
and crooked jaw they had started as if each was separately touched by some
specific recollection.
“Captain
Ahab,” said Tashtego, “that white whale must be the same that some call Moby
Dick.”
“Moby
Dick?” shouted Ahab. “Do ye know the white whale then, Tash?”
“Does
he fan-tail a little curious, sir, before he goes down?” said the Gay-Header
deliberately.
“And
has he a curious spout, too,” said Daggoo, “very bushy, even for a parmacetty,
and mighty quick, Captain Ahab?”
“And
he have one, two, three—oh! good many iron in him hide, too, Captain,” cried
Queequeg disjointedly, “all twiske-tee be-twisk, like him—him—” faltering hard
for a word, and screwing his hand round and round as though uncorking a
bottle—“like him—him—”
“Corkscrew!”
cried Ahab, “aye, Queequeg, the harpoons lie all twisted and wrenched in him;
aye, Daggoo, his spout is a big one, like a whole shock of wheat, and white as
a pile of our Nantucket wool after the great annual sheep-shearing; aye,
Tashtego, and he fan-tails like a split jib in a squall. Death and devils! men,
it is Moby Dick ye have seen—Moby Dick—Moby Dick!”
“Captain
Ahab,” said Starbuck, who, with Stubb and Flask, had thus far been eyeing his
superior with increasing surprise, but at last seemed struck with a thought
which somewhat explained all the wonder. “Captain Ahab, I have heard of Moby
Dick—but it was not Moby Dick that took off thy leg?”
“Who
told thee that?” cried Ahab; then pausing, “Aye, Starbuck; aye, my hearties all
round; it was Moby Dick that dismasted me; Moby Dick that brought me to this
dead stump I stand on now. Aye, aye,” he shouted with a terrific, loud, animal
sob, like that of a heart-stricken moose; “Aye, aye! it was that accursed white
whale that razed me; made a poor pegging lubber of me for ever and a day!” Then
tossing both arms, with measureless imprecations he shouted out: “Aye, aye! and
I'll chase him round Good Hope, and round the Horn, and round the Norway
Maelstrom, and round perdition's flames before I give him up. And this is what
ye have shipped for, men! to chase that white whale on both sides of land, and
over all sides of earth, till he spouts black blood and rolls fin out. What say
ye, men, will ye splice hands on it, now? I think ye do look brave.”
“Aye,
aye!” shouted the harpooneers and seamen, running closer to the excited old
man: “A sharp eye for the white whale; a sharp lance for Moby Dick!”
“God
bless ye,” he seemed to half sob and half shout. “God bless ye, men. Steward!
go draw the great measure of grog. But what's this long face about, Mr.
Starbuck; wilt thou not chase the white whale? art not game for Moby Dick?”
“I
am game for his crooked jaw, and for the jaws of Death too, Captain Ahab, if it
fairly comes in the way of the business we follow; but I came here to hunt
whales, not my commander's vengeance. How many barrels will thy vengeance yield
thee even if thou gettest it, Captain Ahab? it will not fetch thee much in our
Nantucket market.”
“Nantucket
market! Hoot! But come closer, Starbuck; thou requirest a little lower layer.
If money's to be the measurer, man, and the accountants have computed their
great counting-house the globe, by girdling it with guineas, one to every three
parts of an inch; then, let me tell thee, that my vengeance will fetch a great
premium here!”
“He
smites his chest,” whispered Stubb, “what's that for? methinks it rings most
vast, but hollow.”
“Vengeance
on a dumb brute!” cried Starbuck, “that simply smote thee from blindest
instinct! Madness! To be enraged with a dumb thing, Captain Ahab, seems
blasphemous.”
“Hark
ye yet again—the little lower layer. All visible objects, man, are but as
pasteboard masks. But in each event—in the living act, the undoubted deed—there,
some unknown but still reasoning thing puts forth the mouldings of its features
from behind the unreasoning mask. If man will strike, strike through the mask!
How can the prisoner reach outside except by thrusting through the wall? To me,
the white whale is that wall, shoved near to me. Sometimes I think there's
naught beyond. But 'tis enough. He tasks me; he heaps me; I see in him
outrageous strength, with an inscrutable malice sinewing it. That inscrutable
thing is chiefly what I hate; and be the white whale agent, or be the white
whale principal, I will wreak that hate upon him. Talk not to me of blasphemy,
man; I'd strike the sun if it insulted me. For could the sun do that, then
could I do the other; since there is ever a sort of fair play herein, jealousy
presiding over all creations. But not my master, man, is even that fair play.
Who's over me? Truth hath no confines. Take off thine eye! more intolerable
than fiends' glarings is a doltish stare! So, so; thou reddenest and palest; my
heat has melted thee to anger-glow. But look ye, Starbuck, what is said in
heat, that thing unsays itself. There are men from whom warm words are small
indignity. I meant not to incense thee. Let it go. Look! see yonder Turkish
cheeks of spotted tawn—living, breathing pictures painted by the sun. The Pagan
leopards—the unrecking and unworshipping things, that live; and seek, and give
no reasons for the torrid life they feel! The crew, man, the crew! Are they not
one and all with Ahab, in this matter of the whale? See Stubb! he laughs! See
yonder Chilian! he snorts to think of it. Stand up amid the general hurricane,
thy one tost sapling cannot, Starbuck! And what is it? Reckon it. 'Tis but to
help strike a fin; no wondrous feat for Starbuck. What is it more? From this
one poor hunt, then, the best lance out of all Nantucket, surely he will not
hang back, when every foremast-hand has clutched a whetstone? Ah! constrainings
seize thee; I see! the billow lifts thee! Speak, but speak!—Aye, aye! thy
silence, then, that voices thee. (Aside) Something shot from my dilated
nostrils, he has inhaled it in his lungs. Starbuck now is mine; cannot oppose
me now, without rebellion.”
“God
keep me!—keep us all!” murmured Starbuck, lowly.
But
in his joy at the enchanted, tacit acquiescence of the mate, Ahab did not hear
his foreboding invocation; nor yet the low laugh from the hold; nor yet the
presaging vibrations of the winds in the cordage; nor yet the hollow flap of
the sails against the masts, as for a moment their hearts sank in. For again
Starbuck's downcast eyes lighted up with the stubbornness of life; the
subterranean laugh died away; the winds blew on; the sails filled out; the ship
heaved and rolled as before. Ah, ye admonitions and warnings! why stay ye not
when ye come? But rather are ye predictions than warnings, ye shadows! Yet not
so much predictions from without, as verifications of the foregoing things
within. For with little external to constrain us, the innermost necessities in
our being, these still drive us on.
“The
measure! the measure!” cried Ahab.
Receiving
the brimming pewter, and turning to the harpooneers, he ordered them to produce
their weapons. Then ranging them before him near the capstan, with their
harpoons in their hands, while his three mates stood at his side with their
lances, and the rest of the ship's company formed a circle round the group; he
stood for an instant searchingly eyeing every man of his crew. But those wild
eyes met his, as the bloodshot eyes of the prairie wolves meet the eye of their
leader, ere he rushes on at their head in the trail of the bison; but, alas!
only to fall into the hidden snare of the Indian.
“Drink
and pass!” he cried, handing the heavy charged flagon to the nearest seaman.
“The crew alone now drink. Round with it, round! Short draughts—long swallows,
men; 'tis hot as Satan's hoof. So, so; it goes round excellently. It spiralizes
in ye; forks out at the serpent-snapping eye. Well done; almost drained. That
way it went, this way it comes. Hand it me—here's a hollow! Men, ye seem the
years; so brimming life is gulped and gone. Steward, refill!
“Attend
now, my braves. I have mustered ye all round this capstan; and ye mates, flank
me with your lances; and ye harpooneers, stand there with your irons; and ye,
stout mariners, ring me in, that I may in some sort revive a noble custom of my
fisherman fathers before me. O men, you will yet see that—Ha! boy, come back?
bad pennies come not sooner. Hand it me. Why, now, this pewter had run brimming
again, wer't not thou St. Vitus' imp—away, thou ague!
“Advance,
ye mates! Cross your lances full before me. Well done! Let me touch the axis.”
So saying, with extended arm, he grasped the three level, radiating lances at
their crossed centre; while so doing, suddenly and nervously twitched them;
meanwhile, glancing intently from Starbuck to Stubb; from Stubb to Flask. It
seemed as though, by some nameless, interior volition, he would fain have
shocked into them the same fiery emotion accumulated within the Leyden jar of
his own magnetic life. The three mates quailed before his strong, sustained,
and mystic aspect. Stubb and Flask looked sideways from him; the honest eye of
Starbuck fell downright.
“In
vain!” cried Ahab; “but, maybe, 'tis well. For did ye three but once take the
full-forced shock, then mine own electric thing, that had perhaps expired from
out me. Perchance, too, it would have dropped ye dead. Perchance ye need it
not. Down lances! And now, ye mates, I do appoint ye three cupbearers to my
three pagan kinsmen there—yon three most honorable gentlemen and noblemen, my
valiant harpooneers. Disdain the task? What, when the great Pope washes the
feet of beggars, using his tiara for ewer? Oh, my sweet cardinals! your own
condescension, that shall bend ye to it. I do not order ye; ye will it. Cut
your seizings and draw the poles, ye harpooneers!”
Silently
obeying the order, the three harpooneers now stood with the detached iron part
of their harpoons, some three feet long, held, barbs up, before him.
“Stab
me not with that keen steel! Cant them; cant them over! know ye not the goblet
end? Turn up the socket! So, so; now, ye cup-bearers, advance. The irons! take
them; hold them while I fill!” Forthwith, slowly going from one officer to the
other, he brimmed the harpoon sockets with the fiery waters from the pewter.
“Now,
three to three, ye stand. Commend the murderous chalices! Bestow them, ye who
are now made parties to this indissoluble league. Ha! Starbuck! but the deed is
done! Yon ratifying sun now waits to sit upon it. Drink, ye harpooneers! drink
and swear, ye men that man the deathful whaleboat's bow—Death to Moby Dick! God
hunt us all, if we do not hunt Moby Dick to his death!” The long, barbed steel
goblets were lifted; and to cries and maledictions against the white whale, the
spirits were simultaneously quaffed down with a hiss. Starbuck paled, and
turned, and shivered. Once more, and finally, the replenished pewter went the
rounds among the frantic crew; when, waving his free hand to them, they all
dispersed; and Ahab retired within his cabin.
CHAPTER
37. Sunset.
The
cabin; by the stern windows; Ahab sitting alone, and gazing out.
I
leave a white and turbid wake; pale waters, paler cheeks, where'er I sail. The
envious billows sidelong swell to whelm my track; let them; but first I pass.
Yonder,
by ever-brimming goblet's rim, the warm waves blush like wine. The gold brow
plumbs the blue. The diver sun—slow dived from noon—goes down; my soul mounts
up! she wearies with her endless hill. Is, then, the crown too heavy that I
wear? this Iron Crown of Lombardy. Yet is it bright with many a gem; I the
wearer, see not its far flashings; but darkly feel that I wear that, that
dazzlingly confounds. 'Tis iron—that I know—not gold. 'Tis split, too—that I
feel; the jagged edge galls me so, my brain seems to beat against the solid
metal; aye, steel skull, mine; the sort that needs no helmet in the most
brain-battering fight!
Dry
heat upon my brow? Oh! time was, when as the sunrise nobly spurred me, so the
sunset soothed. No more. This lovely light, it lights not me; all loveliness is
anguish to me, since I can ne'er enjoy. Gifted with the high perception, I lack
the low, enjoying power; damned, most subtly and most malignantly! damned in the
midst of Paradise! Good night—good night! (waving his hand, he moves from the
window.)
'Twas
not so hard a task. I thought to find one stubborn, at the least; but my one
cogged circle fits into all their various wheels, and they revolve. Or, if you
will, like so many ant-hills of powder, they all stand before me; and I their
match. Oh, hard! that to fire others, the match itself must needs be wasting!
What I've dared, I've willed; and what I've willed, I'll do! They think me
mad—Starbuck does; but I'm demoniac, I am madness maddened! That wild madness
that's only calm to comprehend itself! The prophecy was that I should be
dismembered; and—Aye! I lost this leg. I now prophesy that I will dismember my
dismemberer. Now, then, be the prophet and the fulfiller one. That's more than
ye, ye great gods, ever were. I laugh and hoot at ye, ye cricket-players, ye
pugilists, ye deaf Burkes and blinded Bendigoes! I will not say as schoolboys
do to bullies—Take some one of your own size; don't pommel me! No, ye've knocked
me down, and I am up again; but yehave run and hidden. Come forth from behind
your cotton bags! I have no long gun to reach ye. Come, Ahab's compliments to
ye; come and see if ye can swerve me. Swerve me? ye cannot swerve me, else ye
swerve yourselves! man has ye there. Swerve me? The path to my fixed purpose is
laid with iron rails, whereon my soul is grooved to run. Over unsounded gorges,
through the rifled hearts of mountains, under torrents' beds, unerringly I
rush! Naught's an obstacle, naught's an angle to the iron way!
CHAPTER
38. Dusk.
By
the Mainmast; Starbuck leaning against it.
My
soul is more than matched; she's overmanned; and by a madman! Insufferable
sting, that sanity should ground arms on such a field! But he drilled deep
down, and blasted all my reason out of me! I think I see his impious end; but
feel that I must help him to it. Will I, nill I, the ineffable thing has tied
me to him; tows me with a cable I have no knife to cut. Horrible old man! Who's
over him, he cries;—aye, he would be a democrat to all above; look, how he
lords it over all below! Oh! I plainly see my miserable office,—to obey,
rebelling; and worse yet, to hate with touch of pity! For in his eyes I read
some lurid woe would shrivel me up, had I it. Yet is there hope. Time and tide
flow wide. The hated whale has the round watery world to swim in, as the small
gold-fish has its glassy globe. His heaven-insulting purpose, God may wedge
aside. I would up heart, were it not like lead. But my whole clock's run down;
my heart the all-controlling weight, I have no key to lift again.
[A
burst of revelry from the forecastle.]
Oh,
God! to sail with such a heathen crew that have small touch of human mothers in
them! Whelped somewhere by the sharkish sea. The white whale is their
demigorgon. Hark! the infernal orgies! that revelry is forward! mark the
unfaltering silence aft! Methinks it pictures life. Foremost through the
sparkling sea shoots on the gay, embattled, bantering bow, but only to drag
dark Ahab after it, where he broods within his sternward cabin, builded over
the dead water of the wake, and further on, hunted by its wolfish gurglings.
The long howl thrills me through! Peace! ye revellers, and set the watch! Oh,
life! 'tis in an hour like this, with soul beat down and held to knowledge,—as
wild, untutored things are forced to feed—Oh, life! 'tis now that I do feel the
latent horror in thee! but 'tis not me! that horror's out of me! and with the
soft feeling of the human in me, yet will I try to fight ye, ye grim, phantom
futures! Stand by me, hold me, bind me, O ye blessed influences!
CHAPTER
39. First Night-Watch.
Fore-Top.
(Stubb
solus, and mending a brace.)
Ha!
ha! ha! ha! hem! clear my throat!—I've been thinking over it ever since, and
that ha, ha's the final consequence. Why so? Because a laugh's the wisest,
easiest answer to all that's queer; and come what will, one comfort's always
left—that unfailing comfort is, it's all predestinated. I heard not all his
talk with Starbuck; but to my poor eye Starbuck then looked something as I the
other evening felt. Be sure the old Mogul has fixed him, too. I twigged it,
knew it; had had the gift, might readily have prophesied it—for when I clapped
my eye upon his skull I saw it. Well, Stubb, wise Stubb—that's my title—well,
Stubb, what of it, Stubb? Here's a carcase. I know not all that may be coming,
but be it what it will, I'll go to it laughing. Such a waggish leering as lurks
in all your horribles! I feel funny. Fa, la! lirra, skirra! What's my juicy
little pear at home doing now? Crying its eyes out?—Giving a party to the last
arrived harpooneers, I dare say, gay as a frigate's pennant, and so am I—fa,
la! lirra, skirra! Oh—
We'll drink to-night with hearts as light,
To love, as gay and fleeting
As bubbles that swim, on the beaker's brim,
And break on the lips while meeting.
A
brave stave that—who calls? Mr. Starbuck? Aye, aye, sir—(Aside) he's my
superior, he has his too, if I'm not mistaken.—Aye, aye, sir, just through with
this job—coming.
CHAPTER
40. Midnight, Forecastle.
HARPOONEERS
AND SAILORS.
(Foresail
rises and discovers the watch standing, lounging, leaning, and lying in various
attitudes, all singing in chorus.)
Farewell and adieu to you, Spanish ladies!
Farewell and adieu to you, ladies of Spain!
Our captain's commanded.—
1ST
NANTUCKET SAILOR. Oh, boys, don't be sentimental; it's bad for the digestion!
Take a tonic, follow me!
(Sings,
and all follow.)
Our captain stood upon the deck,
A spy-glass in his hand,
A viewing of those gallant whales
That blew at every strand.
Oh, your tubs in your boats, my boys,
And by your braces stand,
And we'll have one of those fine whales,
Hand, boys, over hand!
So, be cheery, my lads! may your hearts never fail!
While the bold harpooner is striking the whale!
MATE'S
VOICE FROM THE QUARTER-DECK. Eight bells there, forward!
2ND
NANTUCKET SAILOR. Avast the chorus! Eight bells there! d'ye hear, bell-boy?
Strike the bell eight, thou Pip! thou blackling! and let me call the watch.
I've the sort of mouth for that—the hogshead mouth. So, so, (thrusts his head
down the scuttle,) Star-bo-l-e-e-n-s, a-h-o-y! Eight bells there below! Tumble
up!
DUTCH
SAILOR. Grand snoozing to-night, maty; fat night for that. I mark this in our
old Mogul's wine; it's quite as deadening to some as filliping to others. We
sing; they sleep—aye, lie down there, like ground-tier butts. At 'em again!
There, take this copper-pump, and hail 'em through it. Tell 'em to avast
dreaming of their lasses. Tell 'em it's the resurrection; they must kiss their
last, and come to judgment. That's the way—that's it; thy throat ain't spoiled
with eating Amsterdam butter.
FRENCH
SAILOR. Hist, boys! let's have a jig or two before we ride to anchor in Blanket
Bay. What say ye? There comes the other watch. Stand by all legs! Pip! little
Pip! hurrah with your tambourine!
PIP.
(Sulky and sleepy.) Don't know where it is.
FRENCH
SAILOR. Beat thy belly, then, and wag thy ears. Jig it, men, I say; merry's the
word; hurrah! Damn me, won't you dance? Form, now, Indian-file, and gallop into
the double-shuffle? Throw yourselves! Legs! legs!
ICELAND
SAILOR. I don't like your floor, maty; it's too springy to my taste. I'm used
to ice-floors. I'm sorry to throw cold water on the subject; but excuse me.
MALTESE
SAILOR. Me too; where's your girls? Who but a fool would take his left hand by
his right, and say to himself, how d'ye do? Partners! I must have partners!
SICILIAN
SAILOR. Aye; girls and a green!—then I'll hop with ye; yea, turn grasshopper!
LONG-ISLAND
SAILOR. Well, well, ye sulkies, there's plenty more of us. Hoe corn when you
may, say I. All legs go to harvest soon. Ah! here comes the music; now for it!
AZORE
SAILOR. (Ascending, and pitching the tambourine up the scuttle.) Here you are,
Pip; and there's the windlass-bitts; up you mount! Now, boys! (The half of them
dance to the tambourine; some go below; some sleep or lie among the coils of
rigging. Oaths a-plenty.)
AZORE
SAILOR. (Dancing) Go it, Pip! Bang it, bell-boy! Rig it, dig it, stig it, quig
it, bell-boy! Make fire-flies; break the jinglers!
PIP.
Jinglers, you say?—there goes another, dropped off; I pound it so.
CHINA
SAILOR. Rattle thy teeth, then, and pound away; make a pagoda of thyself.
FRENCH
SAILOR. Merry-mad! Hold up thy hoop, Pip, till I jump through it! Split jibs!
tear yourselves!
TASHTEGO.
(Quietly smoking.) That's a white man; he calls that fun: humph! I save my
sweat.
OLD
MANX SAILOR. I wonder whether those jolly lads bethink them of what they are
dancing over. I'll dance over your grave, I will—that's the bitterest threat of
your night-women, that beat head-winds round corners. O Christ! to think of the
green navies and the green-skulled crews! Well, well; belike the whole world's
a ball, as you scholars have it; and so 'tis right to make one ballroom of it.
Dance on, lads, you're young; I was once.
3D
NANTUCKET SAILOR. Spell oh!—whew! this is worse than pulling after whales in a
calm—give us a whiff, Tash.
(They
cease dancing, and gather in clusters. Meantime the sky darkens—the wind
rises.)
LASCAR
SAILOR. By Brahma! boys, it'll be douse sail soon. The sky-born, high-tide
Ganges turned to wind! Thou showest thy black brow, Seeva!
MALTESE
SAILOR. (Reclining and shaking his cap.) It's the waves—the snow's caps turn to
jig it now. They'll shake their tassels soon. Now would all the waves were
women, then I'd go drown, and chassee with them evermore! There's naught so
sweet on earth—heaven may not match it!—as those swift glances of warm, wild
bosoms in the dance, when the over-arboring arms hide such ripe, bursting
grapes.
SICILIAN
SAILOR. (Reclining.) Tell me not of it! Hark ye, lad—fleet interlacings of the
limbs—lithe swayings—coyings—flutterings! lip! heart! hip! all graze: unceasing
touch and go! not taste, observe ye, else come satiety. Eh, Pagan? (Nudging.)
TAHITAN
SAILOR. (Reclining on a mat.) Hail, holy nakedness of our dancing girls!—the
Heeva-Heeva! Ah! low veiled, high palmed Tahiti! I still rest me on thy mat,
but the soft soil has slid! I saw thee woven in the wood, my mat! green the
first day I brought ye thence; now worn and wilted quite. Ah me!—not thou nor I
can bear the change! How then, if so be transplanted to yon sky? Hear I the
roaring streams from Pirohitee's peak of spears, when they leap down the crags
and drown the villages?—The blast! the blast! Up, spine, and meet it! (Leaps to
his feet.)
PORTUGUESE
SAILOR. How the sea rolls swashing 'gainst the side! Stand by for reefing,
hearties! the winds are just crossing swords, pell-mell they'll go lunging
presently.
DANISH
SAILOR. Crack, crack, old ship! so long as thou crackest, thou holdest! Well
done! The mate there holds ye to it stiffly. He's no more afraid than the isle
fort at Cattegat, put there to fight the Baltic with storm-lashed guns, on
which the sea-salt cakes!
4TH
NANTUCKET SAILOR. He has his orders, mind ye that. I heard old Ahab tell him he
must always kill a squall, something as they burst a waterspout with a
pistol—fire your ship right into it!
ENGLISH
SAILOR. Blood! but that old man's a grand old cove! We are the lads to hunt him
up his whale!
ALL.
Aye! aye!
OLD
MANX SAILOR. How the three pines shake! Pines are the hardest sort of tree to
live when shifted to any other soil, and here there's none but the crew's
cursed clay. Steady, helmsman! steady. This is the sort of weather when brave
hearts snap ashore, and keeled hulls split at sea. Our captain has his
birthmark; look yonder, boys, there's another in the sky—lurid-like, ye see,
all else pitch black.
DAGGOO.
What of that? Who's afraid of black's afraid of me! I'm quarried out of it!
SPANISH
SAILOR. (Aside.) He wants to bully, ah!—the old grudge makes me touchy.
(Advancing.) Aye, harpooneer, thy race is the undeniable dark side of
mankind—devilish dark at that. No offence.
DAGGOO
(grimly). None.
ST.
JAGO'S SAILOR. That Spaniard's mad or drunk. But that can't be, or else in his
one case our old Mogul's fire-waters are somewhat long in working.
5TH
NANTUCKET SAILOR. What's that I saw—lightning? Yes.
SPANISH
SAILOR. No; Daggoo showing his teeth.
DAGGOO
(springing). Swallow thine, mannikin! White skin, white liver!
SPANISH
SAILOR (meeting him). Knife thee heartily! big frame, small spirit!
ALL.
A row! a row! a row!
TASHTEGO
(with a whiff). A row a'low, and a row aloft—Gods and men—both brawlers! Humph!
BELFAST
SAILOR. A row! arrah a row! The Virgin be blessed, a row! Plunge in with ye!
ENGLISH
SAILOR. Fair play! Snatch the Spaniard's knife! A ring, a ring!
OLD
MANX SAILOR. Ready formed. There! the ringed horizon. In that ring Cain struck
Abel. Sweet work, right work! No? Why then, God, mad'st thou the ring?
MATE'S
VOICE FROM THE QUARTER-DECK. Hands by the halyards! in top-gallant sails! Stand
by to reef topsails!
ALL.
The squall! the squall! jump, my jollies! (They scatter.)
PIP
(shrinking under the windlass). Jollies? Lord help such jollies! Crish, crash!
there goes the jib-stay! Blang-whang! God! Duck lower, Pip, here comes the
royal yard! It's worse than being in the whirled woods, the last day of the
year! Who'd go climbing after chestnuts now? But there they go, all cursing,
and here I don't. Fine prospects to 'em; they're on the road to heaven. Hold on
hard! Jimmini, what a squall! But those chaps there are worse yet—they are your
white squalls, they. White squalls? white whale, shirr! shirr! Here have I
heard all their chat just now, and the white whale—shirr! shirr!—but spoken of
once! and only this evening—it makes me jingle all over like my tambourine—that
anaconda of an old man swore 'em in to hunt him! Oh, thou big white God aloft
there somewhere in yon darkness, have mercy on this small black boy down here;
preserve him from all men that have no bowels to feel fear!
CHAPTER
41. Moby Dick.
I,
Ishmael, was one of that crew; my shouts had gone up with the rest; my oath had
been welded with theirs; and stronger I shouted, and more did I hammer and
clinch my oath, because of the dread in my soul. A wild, mystical,
sympathetical feeling was in me; Ahab's quenchless feud seemed mine. With
greedy ears I learned the history of that murderous monster against whom I and
all the others had taken our oaths of violence and revenge.
For
some time past, though at intervals only, the unaccompanied, secluded White
Whale had haunted those uncivilized seas mostly frequented by the Sperm Whale
fishermen. But not all of them knew of his existence; only a few of them,
comparatively, had knowingly seen him; while the number who as yet had actually
and knowingly given battle to him, was small indeed. For, owing to the large
number of whale-cruisers; the disorderly way they were sprinkled over the
entire watery circumference, many of them adventurously pushing their quest
along solitary latitudes, so as seldom or never for a whole twelvemonth or more
on a stretch, to encounter a single news-telling sail of any sort; the
inordinate length of each separate voyage; the irregularity of the times of
sailing from home; all these, with other circumstances, direct and indirect,
long obstructed the spread through the whole world-wide whaling-fleet of the
special individualizing tidings concerning Moby Dick. It was hardly to be
doubted, that several vessels reported to have encountered, at such or such a
time, or on such or such a meridian, a Sperm Whale of uncommon magnitude and
malignity, which whale, after doing great mischief to his assailants, had
completely escaped them; to some minds it was not an unfair presumption, I say,
that the whale in question must have been no other than Moby Dick. Yet as of
late the Sperm Whale fishery had been marked by various and not unfrequent
instances of great ferocity, cunning, and malice in the monster attacked;
therefore it was, that those who by accident ignorantly gave battle to Moby Dick;
such hunters, perhaps, for the most part, were content to ascribe the peculiar
terror he bred, more, as it were, to the perils of the Sperm Whale fishery at
large, than to the individual cause. In that way, mostly, the disastrous
encounter between Ahab and the whale had hitherto been popularly regarded.
And
as for those who, previously hearing of the White Whale, by chance caught sight
of him; in the beginning of the thing they had every one of them, almost, as
boldly and fearlessly lowered for him, as for any other whale of that species.
But at length, such calamities did ensue in these assaults—not restricted to
sprained wrists and ankles, broken limbs, or devouring amputations—but fatal to
the last degree of fatality; those repeated disastrous repulses, all
accumulating and piling their terrors upon Moby Dick; those things had gone far
to shake the fortitude of many brave hunters, to whom the story of the White
Whale had eventually come.
Nor
did wild rumors of all sorts fail to exaggerate, and still the more horrify the
true histories of these deadly encounters. For not only do fabulous rumors
naturally grow out of the very body of all surprising terrible events,—as the
smitten tree gives birth to its fungi; but, in maritime life, far more than in
that of terra firma, wild rumors abound, wherever there is any adequate reality
for them to cling to. And as the sea surpasses the land in this matter, so the
whale fishery surpasses every other sort of maritime life, in the wonderfulness
and fearfulness of the rumors which sometimes circulate there. For not only are
whalemen as a body unexempt from that ignorance and superstitiousness
hereditary to all sailors; but of all sailors, they are by all odds the most
directly brought into contact with whatever is appallingly astonishing in the
sea; face to face they not only eye its greatest marvels, but, hand to jaw,
give battle to them. Alone, in such remotest waters, that though you sailed a
thousand miles, and passed a thousand shores, you would not come to any chiseled
hearth-stone, or aught hospitable beneath that part of the sun; in such
latitudes and longitudes, pursuing too such a calling as he does, the whaleman
is wrapped by influences all tending to make his fancy pregnant with many a
mighty birth.
No
wonder, then, that ever gathering volume from the mere transit over the widest
watery spaces, the outblown rumors of the White Whale did in the end
incorporate with themselves all manner of morbid hints, and half-formed fœtal
suggestions of supernatural agencies, which eventually invested Moby Dick with
new terrors unborrowed from anything that visibly appears. So that in many
cases such a panic did he finally strike, that few who by those rumors, at
least, had heard of the White Whale, few of those hunters were willing to
encounter the perils of his jaw.
But
there were still other and more vital practical influences at work. Not even at
the present day has the original prestige of the Sperm Whale, as fearfully
distinguished from all other species of the leviathan, died out of the minds of
the whalemen as a body. There are those this day among them, who, though
intelligent and courageous enough in offering battle to the Greenland or Right
whale, would perhaps—either from professional inexperience, or incompetency, or
timidity, decline a contest with the Sperm Whale; at any rate, there are plenty
of whalemen, especially among those whaling nations not sailing under the
American flag, who have never hostilely encountered the Sperm Whale, but whose
sole knowledge of the leviathan is restricted to the ignoble monster
primitively pursued in the North; seated on their hatches, these men will
hearken with a childish fireside interest and awe, to the wild, strange tales
of Southern whaling. Nor is the pre-eminent tremendousness of the great Sperm
Whale anywhere more feelingly comprehended, than on board of those prows which
stem him.
And
as if the now tested reality of his might had in former legendary times thrown
its shadow before it; we find some book naturalists—Olassen and
Povelson—declaring the Sperm Whale not only to be a consternation to every
other creature in the sea, but also to be so incredibly ferocious as
continually to be athirst for human blood. Nor even down to so late a time as
Cuvier's, were these or almost similar impressions effaced. For in his Natural
History, the Baron himself affirms that at sight of the Sperm Whale, all fish
(sharks included) are “struck with the most lively terrors,” and “often in the
precipitancy of their flight dash themselves against the rocks with such
violence as to cause instantaneous death.” And however the general experiences
in the fishery may amend such reports as these; yet in their full terribleness,
even to the bloodthirsty item of Povelson, the superstitious belief in them is,
in some vicissitudes of their vocation, revived in the minds of the hunters.
So
that overawed by the rumors and portents concerning him, not a few of the
fishermen recalled, in reference to Moby Dick, the earlier days of the Sperm
Whale fishery, when it was oftentimes hard to induce long practised Right
whalemen to embark in the perils of this new and daring warfare; such men
protesting that although other leviathans might be hopefully pursued, yet to
chase and point lance at such an apparition as the Sperm Whale was not for
mortal man. That to attempt it, would be inevitably to be torn into a quick
eternity. On this head, there are some remarkable documents that may be
consulted.
Nevertheless,
some there were, who even in the face of these things were ready to give chase
to Moby Dick; and a still greater number who, chancing only to hear of him
distantly and vaguely, without the specific details of any certain calamity,
and without superstitious accompaniments, were sufficiently hardy not to flee
from the battle if offered.
One
of the wild suggestions referred to, as at last coming to be linked with the
White Whale in the minds of the superstitiously inclined, was the unearthly
conceit that Moby Dick was ubiquitous; that he had actually been encountered in
opposite latitudes at one and the same instant of time.
Nor,
credulous as such minds must have been, was this conceit altogether without
some faint show of superstitious probability. For as the secrets of the
currents in the seas have never yet been divulged, even to the most erudite
research; so the hidden ways of the Sperm Whale when beneath the surface
remain, in great part, unaccountable to his pursuers; and from time to time
have originated the most curious and contradictory speculations regarding them,
especially concerning the mystic modes whereby, after sounding to a great
depth, he transports himself with such vast swiftness to the most widely
distant points.
It
is a thing well known to both American and English whale-ships, and as well a
thing placed upon authoritative record years ago by Scoresby, that some whales
have been captured far north in the Pacific, in whose bodies have been found
the barbs of harpoons darted in the Greenland seas. Nor is it to be gainsaid,
that in some of these instances it has been declared that the interval of time
between the two assaults could not have exceeded very many days. Hence, by
inference, it has been believed by some whalemen, that the Nor' West Passage,
so long a problem to man, was never a problem to the whale. So that here, in
the real living experience of living men, the prodigies related in old times of
the inland Strello mountain in Portugal (near whose top there was said to be a
lake in which the wrecks of ships floated up to the surface); and that still
more wonderful story of the Arethusa fountain near Syracuse (whose waters were
believed to have come from the Holy Land by an underground passage); these
fabulous narrations are almost fully equalled by the realities of the whalemen.
Forced
into familiarity, then, with such prodigies as these; and knowing that after
repeated, intrepid assaults, the White Whale had escaped alive; it cannot be
much matter of surprise that some whalemen should go still further in their
superstitions; declaring Moby Dick not only ubiquitous, but immortal (for
immortality is but ubiquity in time); that though groves of spears should be
planted in his flanks, he would still swim away unharmed; or if indeed he
should ever be made to spout thick blood, such a sight would be but a ghastly
deception; for again in unensanguined billows hundreds of leagues away, his
unsullied jet would once more be seen.
But
even stripped of these supernatural surmisings, there was enough in the earthly
make and incontestable character of the monster to strike the imagination with
unwonted power. For, it was not so much his uncommon bulk that so much
distinguished him from other sperm whales, but, as was elsewhere thrown out—a
peculiar snow-white wrinkled forehead, and a high, pyramidical white hump.
These were his prominent features; the tokens whereby, even in the limitless,
uncharted seas, he revealed his identity, at a long distance, to those who knew
him.
The
rest of his body was so streaked, and spotted, and marbled with the same
shrouded hue, that, in the end, he had gained his distinctive appellation of
the White Whale; a name, indeed, literally justified by his vivid aspect, when
seen gliding at high noon through a dark blue sea, leaving a milky-way wake of
creamy foam, all spangled with golden gleamings.
Nor
was it his unwonted magnitude, nor his remarkable hue, nor yet his deformed
lower jaw, that so much invested the whale with natural terror, as that
unexampled, intelligent malignity which, according to specific accounts, he had
over and over again evinced in his assaults. More than all, his treacherous
retreats struck more of dismay than perhaps aught else. For, when swimming
before his exulting pursuers, with every apparent symptom of alarm, he had
several times been known to turn round suddenly, and, bearing down upon them,
either stave their boats to splinters, or drive them back in consternation to
their ship.
Already
several fatalities had attended his chase. But though similar disasters,
however little bruited ashore, were by no means unusual in the fishery; yet, in
most instances, such seemed the White Whale's infernal aforethought of
ferocity, that every dismembering or death that he caused, was not wholly
regarded as having been inflicted by an unintelligent agent.
Judge,
then, to what pitches of inflamed, distracted fury the minds of his more
desperate hunters were impelled, when amid the chips of chewed boats, and the
sinking limbs of torn comrades, they swam out of the white curds of the whale's
direful wrath into the serene, exasperating sunlight, that smiled on, as if at
a birth or a bridal.
His
three boats stove around him, and oars and men both whirling in the eddies; one
captain, seizing the line-knife from his broken prow, had dashed at the whale,
as an Arkansas duellist at his foe, blindly seeking with a six inch blade to
reach the fathom-deep life of the whale. That captain was Ahab. And then it
was, that suddenly sweeping his sickle-shaped lower jaw beneath him, Moby Dick
had reaped away Ahab's leg, as a mower a blade of grass in the field. No
turbaned Turk, no hired Venetian or Malay, could have smote him with more
seeming malice. Small reason was there to doubt, then, that ever since that
almost fatal encounter, Ahab had cherished a wild vindictiveness against the
whale, all the more fell for that in his frantic morbidness he at last came to
identify with him, not only all his bodily woes, but all his intellectual and
spiritual exasperations. The White Whale swam before him as the monomaniac
incarnation of all those malicious agencies which some deep men feel eating in
them, till they are left living on with half a heart and half a lung. That
intangible malignity which has been from the beginning; to whose dominion even
the modern Christians ascribe one-half of the worlds; which the ancient Ophites
of the east reverenced in their statue devil;—Ahab did not fall down and
worship it like them; but deliriously transferring its idea to the abhorred
white whale, he pitted himself, all mutilated, against it. All that most
maddens and torments; all that stirs up the lees of things; all truth with
malice in it; all that cracks the sinews and cakes the brain; all the subtle
demonisms of life and thought; all evil, to crazy Ahab, were visibly
personified, and made practically assailable in Moby Dick. He piled upon the
whale's white hump the sum of all the general rage and hate felt by his whole
race from Adam down; and then, as if his chest had been a mortar, he burst his
hot heart's shell upon it.
It
is not probable that this monomania in him took its instant rise at the precise
time of his bodily dismemberment. Then, in darting at the monster, knife in
hand, he had but given loose to a sudden, passionate, corporal animosity; and
when he received the stroke that tore him, he probably but felt the agonizing
bodily laceration, but nothing more. Yet, when by this collision forced to turn
towards home, and for long months of days and weeks, Ahab and anguish lay
stretched together in one hammock, rounding in mid winter that dreary, howling
Patagonian Cape; then it was, that his torn body and gashed soul bled into one
another; and so interfusing, made him mad. That it was only then, on the
homeward voyage, after the encounter, that the final monomania seized him,
seems all but certain from the fact that, at intervals during the passage, he
was a raving lunatic; and, though unlimbed of a leg, yet such vital strength
yet lurked in his Egyptian chest, and was moreover intensified by his delirium,
that his mates were forced to lace him fast, even there, as he sailed, raving
in his hammock. In a strait-jacket, he swung to the mad rockings of the gales.
And, when running into more sufferable latitudes, the ship, with mild
stun'sails spread, floated across the tranquil tropics, and, to all
appearances, the old man's delirium seemed left behind him with the Cape Horn
swells, and he came forth from his dark den into the blessed light and air;
even then, when he bore that firm, collected front, however pale, and issued
his calm orders once again; and his mates thanked God the direful madness was
now gone; even then, Ahab, in his hidden self, raved on. Human madness is
oftentimes a cunning and most feline thing. When you think it fled, it may have
but become transfigured into some still subtler form. Ahab's full lunacy
subsided not, but deepeningly contracted; like the unabated Hudson, when that
noble Northman flows narrowly, but unfathomably through the Highland gorge.
But, as in his narrow-flowing monomania, not one jot of Ahab's broad madness
had been left behind; so in that broad madness, not one jot of his great
natural intellect had perished. That before living agent, now became the living
instrument. If such a furious trope may stand, his special lunacy stormed his
general sanity, and carried it, and turned all its concentred cannon upon its
own mad mark; so that far from having lost his strength, Ahab, to that one end,
did now possess a thousand fold more potency than ever he had sanely brought to
bear upon any one reasonable object.
This
is much; yet Ahab's larger, darker, deeper part remains unhinted. But vain to
popularize profundities, and all truth is profound. Winding far down from
within the very heart of this spiked Hotel de Cluny where we here stand—however
grand and wonderful, now quit it;—and take your way, ye nobler, sadder souls,
to those vast Roman halls of Thermes; where far beneath the fantastic towers of
man's upper earth, his root of grandeur, his whole awful essence sits in
bearded state; an antique buried beneath antiquities, and throned on torsoes!
So with a broken throne, the great gods mock that captive king; so like a
Caryatid, he patient sits, upholding on his frozen brow the piled entablatures
of ages. Wind ye down there, ye prouder, sadder souls! question that proud, sad
king! A family likeness! aye, he did beget ye, ye young exiled royalties; and
from your grim sire only will the old State-secret come.
Now,
in his heart, Ahab had some glimpse of this, namely: all my means are sane, my
motive and my object mad. Yet without power to kill, or change, or shun the
fact; he likewise knew that to mankind he did long dissemble; in some sort, did
still. But that thing of his dissembling was only subject to his
perceptibility, not to his will determinate. Nevertheless, so well did he
succeed in that dissembling, that when with ivory leg he stepped ashore at
last, no Nantucketer thought him otherwise than but naturally grieved, and that
to the quick, with the terrible casualty which had overtaken him.
The
report of his undeniable delirium at sea was likewise popularly ascribed to a
kindred cause. And so too, all the added moodiness which always afterwards, to
the very day of sailing in the Pequod on the present voyage, sat brooding on
his brow. Nor is it so very unlikely, that far from distrusting his fitness for
another whaling voyage, on account of such dark symptoms, the calculating
people of that prudent isle were inclined to harbor the conceit, that for those
very reasons he was all the better qualified and set on edge, for a pursuit so full
of rage and wildness as the bloody hunt of whales. Gnawed within and scorched
without, with the infixed, unrelenting fangs of some incurable idea; such an
one, could he be found, would seem the very man to dart his iron and lift his
lance against the most appalling of all brutes. Or, if for any reason thought
to be corporeally incapacitated for that, yet such an one would seem
superlatively competent to cheer and howl on his underlings to the attack. But
be all this as it may, certain it is, that with the mad secret of his unabated
rage bolted up and keyed in him, Ahab had purposely sailed upon the present
voyage with the one only and all-engrossing object of hunting the White Whale.
Had any one of his old acquaintances on shore but half dreamed of what was
lurking in him then, how soon would their aghast and righteous souls have
wrenched the ship from such a fiendish man! They were bent on profitable
cruises, the profit to be counted down in dollars from the mint. He was intent
on an audacious, immitigable, and supernatural revenge.
Here,
then, was this grey-headed, ungodly old man, chasing with curses a Job's whale
round the world, at the head of a crew, too, chiefly made up of mongrel
renegades, and castaways, and cannibals—morally enfeebled also, by the
incompetence of mere unaided virtue or right-mindedness in Starbuck, the
invulnerable jollity of indifference and recklessness in Stubb, and the
pervading mediocrity in Flask. Such a crew, so officered, seemed specially
picked and packed by some infernal fatality to help him to his monomaniac
revenge. How it was that they so aboundingly responded to the old man's ire—by
what evil magic their souls were possessed, that at times his hate seemed
almost theirs; the White Whale as much their insufferable foe as his; how all
this came to be—what the White Whale was to them, or how to their unconscious
understandings, also, in some dim, unsuspected way, he might have seemed the
gliding great demon of the seas of life,—all this to explain, would be to dive
deeper than Ishmael can go. The subterranean miner that works in us all, how
can one tell whither leads his shaft by the ever shifting, muffled sound of his
pick? Who does not feel the irresistible arm drag? What skiff in tow of a
seventy-four can stand still? For one, I gave myself up to the abandonment of
the time and the place; but while yet all a-rush to encounter the whale, could
see naught in that brute but the deadliest ill.
CHAPTER
42. The Whiteness of the Whale.
What
the white whale was to Ahab, has been hinted; what, at times, he was to me, as
yet remains unsaid.
Aside
from those more obvious considerations touching Moby Dick, which could not but
occasionally awaken in any man's soul some alarm, there was another thought, or
rather vague, nameless horror concerning him, which at times by its intensity
completely overpowered all the rest; and yet so mystical and well nigh
ineffable was it, that I almost despair of putting it in a comprehensible form.
It was the whiteness of the whale that above all things appalled me. But how
can I hope to explain myself here; and yet, in some dim, random way, explain
myself I must, else all these chapters might be naught.
Though
in many natural objects, whiteness refiningly enhances beauty, as if imparting
some special virtue of its own, as in marbles, japonicas, and pearls; and
though various nations have in some way recognised a certain royal preeminence
in this hue; even the barbaric, grand old kings of Pegu placing the title “Lord
of the White Elephants” above all their other magniloquent ascriptions of
dominion; and the modern kings of Siam unfurling the same snow-white quadruped
in the royal standard; and the Hanoverian flag bearing the one figure of a
snow-white charger; and the great Austrian Empire, Cæsarian, heir to
overlording Rome, having for the imperial colour the same imperial hue; and
though this pre-eminence in it applies to the human race itself, giving the
white man ideal mastership over every dusky tribe; and though, besides, all
this, whiteness has been even made significant of gladness, for among the
Romans a white stone marked a joyful day; and though in other mortal sympathies
and symbolizings, this same hue is made the emblem of many touching, noble
things—the innocence of brides, the benignity of age; though among the Red Men
of America the giving of the white belt of wampum was the deepest pledge of
honor; though in many climes, whiteness typifies the majesty of Justice in the
ermine of the Judge, and contributes to the daily state of kings and queens
drawn by milk-white steeds; though even in the higher mysteries of the most
august religions it has been made the symbol of the divine spotlessness and
power; by the Persian fire worshippers, the white forked flame being held the
holiest on the altar; and in the Greek mythologies, Great Jove himself being
made incarnate in a snow-white bull; and though to the noble Iroquois, the
midwinter sacrifice of the sacred White Dog was by far the holiest festival of
their theology, that spotless, faithful creature being held the purest envoy
they could send to the Great Spirit with the annual tidings of their own
fidelity; and though directly from the Latin word for white, all Christian
priests derive the name of one part of their sacred vesture, the alb or tunic,
worn beneath the cassock; and though among the holy pomps of the Romish faith,
white is specially employed in the celebration of the Passion of our Lord;
though in the Vision of St. John, white robes are given to the redeemed, and
the four-and-twenty elders stand clothed in white before the great white
throne, and the Holy One that sitteth there white like wool; yet for all these
accumulated associations, with whatever is sweet, and honorable, and sublime,
there yet lurks an elusive something in the innermost idea of this hue, which
strikes more of panic to the soul than that redness which affrights in blood.
This
elusive quality it is, which causes the thought of whiteness, when divorced
from more kindly associations, and coupled with any object terrible in itself,
to heighten that terror to the furthest bounds. Witness the white bear of the
poles, and the white shark of the tropics; what but their smooth, flaky
whiteness makes them the transcendent horrors they are? That ghastly whiteness
it is which imparts such an abhorrent mildness, even more loathsome than
terrific, to the dumb gloating of their aspect. So that not the fierce-fanged
tiger in his heraldic coat can so stagger courage as the white-shrouded bear or
shark.*
*With
reference to the Polar bear, it may possibly be urged by him who would fain go
still deeper into this matter, that it is not the whiteness, separately
regarded, which heightens the intolerable hideousness of that brute; for,
analysed, that heightened hideousness, it might be said, only rises from the
circumstance, that the irresponsible ferociousness of the creature stands
invested in the fleece of celestial innocence and love; and hence, by bringing
together two such opposite emotions in our minds, the Polar bear frightens us
with so unnatural a contrast. But even assuming all this to be true; yet, were
it not for the whiteness, you would not have that intensified terror.
As
for the white shark, the white gliding ghostliness of repose in that creature,
when beheld in his ordinary moods, strangely tallies with the same quality in
the Polar quadruped. This peculiarity is most vividly hit by the French in the
name they bestow upon that fish. The Romish mass for the dead begins with
“Requiem eternam” (eternal rest), whence Requiem denominating the mass itself,
and any other funeral music. Now, in allusion to the white, silent stillness of
death in this shark, and the mild deadliness of his habits, the French call him
Requin.
Bethink
thee of the albatross, whence come those clouds of spiritual wonderment and
pale dread, in which that white phantom sails in all imaginations? Not
Coleridge first threw that spell; but God's great, unflattering laureate,
Nature.*
*I
remember the first albatross I ever saw. It was during a prolonged gale, in
waters hard upon the Antarctic seas. From my forenoon watch below, I ascended
to the overclouded deck; and there, dashed upon the main hatches, I saw a
regal, feathery thing of unspotted whiteness, and with a hooked, Roman bill
sublime. At intervals, it arched forth its vast archangel wings, as if to
embrace some holy ark. Wondrous flutterings and throbbings shook it. Though
bodily unharmed, it uttered cries, as some king's ghost in supernatural
distress. Through its inexpressible, strange eyes, methought I peeped to secrets
which took hold of God. As Abraham before the angels, I bowed myself; the white
thing was so white, its wings so wide, and in those for ever exiled waters, I
had lost the miserable warping memories of traditions and of towns. Long I
gazed at that prodigy of plumage. I cannot tell, can only hint, the things that
darted through me then. But at last I awoke; and turning, asked a sailor what
bird was this. A goney, he replied. Goney! never had heard that name before; is
it conceivable that this glorious thing is utterly unknown to men ashore!
never! But some time after, I learned that goney was some seaman's name for
albatross. So that by no possibility could Coleridge's wild Rhyme have had
aught to do with those mystical impressions which were mine, when I saw that
bird upon our deck. For neither had I then read the Rhyme, nor knew the bird to
be an albatross. Yet, in saying this, I do but indirectly burnish a little
brighter the noble merit of the poem and the poet.
I
assert, then, that in the wondrous bodily whiteness of the bird chiefly lurks
the secret of the spell; a truth the more evinced in this, that by a solecism
of terms there are birds called grey albatrosses; and these I have frequently
seen, but never with such emotions as when I beheld the Antarctic fowl.
But
how had the mystic thing been caught? Whisper it not, and I will tell; with a
treacherous hook and line, as the fowl floated on the sea. At last the Captain
made a postman of it; tying a lettered, leathern tally round its neck, with the
ship's time and place; and then letting it escape. But I doubt not, that
leathern tally, meant for man, was taken off in Heaven, when the white fowl
flew to join the wing-folding, the invoking, and adoring cherubim!
Most
famous in our Western annals and Indian traditions is that of the White Steed
of the Prairies; a magnificent milk-white charger, large-eyed, small-headed,
bluff-chested, and with the dignity of a thousand monarchs in his lofty,
overscorning carriage. He was the elected Xerxes of vast herds of wild horses,
whose pastures in those days were only fenced by the Rocky Mountains and the
Alleghanies. At their flaming head he westward trooped it like that chosen star
which every evening leads on the hosts of light. The flashing cascade of his
mane, the curving comet of his tail, invested him with housings more
resplendent than gold and silver-beaters could have furnished him. A most
imperial and archangelical apparition of that unfallen, western world, which to
the eyes of the old trappers and hunters revived the glories of those primeval
times when Adam walked majestic as a god, bluff-browed and fearless as this
mighty steed. Whether marching amid his aides and marshals in the van of
countless cohorts that endlessly streamed it over the plains, like an Ohio; or
whether with his circumambient subjects browsing all around at the horizon, the
White Steed gallopingly reviewed them with warm nostrils reddening through his
cool milkiness; in whatever aspect he presented himself, always to the bravest
Indians he was the object of trembling reverence and awe. Nor can it be
questioned from what stands on legendary record of this noble horse, that it
was his spiritual whiteness chiefly, which so clothed him with divineness; and
that this divineness had that in it which, though commanding worship, at the
same time enforced a certain nameless terror.
But
there are other instances where this whiteness loses all that accessory and
strange glory which invests it in the White Steed and Albatross.
What
is it that in the Albino man so peculiarly repels and often shocks the eye, as
that sometimes he is loathed by his own kith and kin! It is that whiteness
which invests him, a thing expressed by the name he bears. The Albino is as
well made as other men—has no substantive deformity—and yet this mere aspect of
all-pervading whiteness makes him more strangely hideous than the ugliest
abortion. Why should this be so?
Nor,
in quite other aspects, does Nature in her least palpable but not the less
malicious agencies, fail to enlist among her forces this crowning attribute of
the terrible. From its snowy aspect, the gauntleted ghost of the Southern Seas
has been denominated the White Squall. Nor, in some historic instances, has the
art of human malice omitted so potent an auxiliary. How wildly it heightens the
effect of that passage in Froissart, when, masked in the snowy symbol of their
faction, the desperate White Hoods of Ghent murder their bailiff in the
market-place!
Nor,
in some things, does the common, hereditary experience of all mankind fail to
bear witness to the supernaturalism of this hue. It cannot well be doubted,
that the one visible quality in the aspect of the dead which most appals the
gazer, is the marble pallor lingering there; as if indeed that pallor were as
much like the badge of consternation in the other world, as of mortal
trepidation here. And from that pallor of the dead, we borrow the expressive
hue of the shroud in which we wrap them. Nor even in our superstitions do we
fail to throw the same snowy mantle round our phantoms; all ghosts rising in a
milk-white fog—Yea, while these terrors seize us, let us add, that even the
king of terrors, when personified by the evangelist, rides on his pallid horse.
Therefore,
in his other moods, symbolize whatever grand or gracious thing he will by
whiteness, no man can deny that in its profoundest idealized significance it
calls up a peculiar apparition to the soul.
But
though without dissent this point be fixed, how is mortal man to account for
it? To analyse it, would seem impossible. Can we, then, by the citation of some
of those instances wherein this thing of whiteness—though for the time either
wholly or in great part stripped of all direct associations calculated to
impart to it aught fearful, but nevertheless, is found to exert over us the
same sorcery, however modified;—can we thus hope to light upon some chance clue
to conduct us to the hidden cause we seek?
Let
us try. But in a matter like this, subtlety appeals to subtlety, and without
imagination no man can follow another into these halls. And though, doubtless,
some at least of the imaginative impressions about to be presented may have
been shared by most men, yet few perhaps were entirely conscious of them at the
time, and therefore may not be able to recall them now.
Why
to the man of untutored ideality, who happens to be but loosely acquainted with
the peculiar character of the day, does the bare mention of Whitsuntide marshal
in the fancy such long, dreary, speechless processions of slow-pacing pilgrims,
down-cast and hooded with new-fallen snow? Or, to the unread, unsophisticated
Protestant of the Middle American States, why does the passing mention of a
White Friar or a White Nun, evoke such an eyeless statue in the soul?
Or
what is there apart from the traditions of dungeoned warriors and kings (which
will not wholly account for it) that makes the White Tower of London tell so
much more strongly on the imagination of an untravelled American, than those
other storied structures, its neighbors—the Byward Tower, or even the Bloody?
And those sublimer towers, the White Mountains of New Hampshire, whence, in
peculiar moods, comes that gigantic ghostliness over the soul at the bare
mention of that name, while the thought of Virginia's Blue Ridge is full of a
soft, dewy, distant dreaminess? Or why, irrespective of all latitudes and
longitudes, does the name of the White Sea exert such a spectralness over the
fancy, while that of the Yellow Sea lulls us with mortal thoughts of long
lacquered mild afternoons on the waves, followed by the gaudiest and yet
sleepiest of sunsets? Or, to choose a wholly unsubstantial instance, purely
addressed to the fancy, why, in reading the old fairy tales of Central Europe,
does “the tall pale man” of the Hartz forests, whose changeless pallor
unrustlingly glides through the green of the groves—why is this phantom more
terrible than all the whooping imps of the Blocksburg?
Nor
is it, altogether, the remembrance of her cathedral-toppling earthquakes; nor
the stampedoes of her frantic seas; nor the tearlessness of arid skies that
never rain; nor the sight of her wide field of leaning spires, wrenched
cope-stones, and crosses all adroop (like canted yards of anchored fleets); and
her suburban avenues of house-walls lying over upon each other, as a tossed
pack of cards;—it is not these things alone which make tearless Lima, the
strangest, saddest city thou can'st see. For Lima has taken the white veil; and
there is a higher horror in this whiteness of her woe. Old as Pizarro, this
whiteness keeps her ruins for ever new; admits not the cheerful greenness of
complete decay; spreads over her broken ramparts the rigid pallor of an
apoplexy that fixes its own distortions.
I
know that, to the common apprehension, this phenomenon of whiteness is not
confessed to be the prime agent in exaggerating the terror of objects otherwise
terrible; nor to the unimaginative mind is there aught of terror in those
appearances whose awfulness to another mind almost solely consists in this one
phenomenon, especially when exhibited under any form at all approaching to
muteness or universality. What I mean by these two statements may perhaps be
respectively elucidated by the following examples.
First:
The mariner, when drawing nigh the coasts of foreign lands, if by night he hear
the roar of breakers, starts to vigilance, and feels just enough of trepidation
to sharpen all his faculties; but under precisely similar circumstances, let
him be called from his hammock to view his ship sailing through a midnight sea
of milky whiteness—as if from encircling headlands shoals of combed white bears
were swimming round him, then he feels a silent, superstitious dread; the
shrouded phantom of the whitened waters is horrible to him as a real ghost; in
vain the lead assures him he is still off soundings; heart and helm they both
go down; he never rests till blue water is under him again. Yet where is the
mariner who will tell thee, “Sir, it was not so much the fear of striking
hidden rocks, as the fear of that hideous whiteness that so stirred me?”
Second:
To the native Indian of Peru, the continual sight of the snow-howdahed Andes
conveys naught of dread, except, perhaps, in the mere fancying of the eternal
frosted desolateness reigning at such vast altitudes, and the natural conceit
of what a fearfulness it would be to lose oneself in such inhuman solitudes.
Much the same is it with the backwoodsman of the West, who with comparative
indifference views an unbounded prairie sheeted with driven snow, no shadow of
tree or twig to break the fixed trance of whiteness. Not so the sailor,
beholding the scenery of the Antarctic seas; where at times, by some infernal
trick of legerdemain in the powers of frost and air, he, shivering and half
shipwrecked, instead of rainbows speaking hope and solace to his misery, views
what seems a boundless churchyard grinning upon him with its lean ice monuments
and splintered crosses.
But
thou sayest, methinks that white-lead chapter about whiteness is but a white
flag hung out from a craven soul; thou surrenderest to a hypo, Ishmael.
Tell
me, why this strong young colt, foaled in some peaceful valley of Vermont, far
removed from all beasts of prey—why is it that upon the sunniest day, if you
but shake a fresh buffalo robe behind him, so that he cannot even see it, but
only smells its wild animal muskiness—why will he start, snort, and with
bursting eyes paw the ground in phrensies of affright? There is no remembrance
in him of any gorings of wild creatures in his green northern home, so that the
strange muskiness he smells cannot recall to him anything associated with the
experience of former perils; for what knows he, this New England colt, of the
black bisons of distant Oregon?
No:
but here thou beholdest even in a dumb brute, the instinct of the knowledge of
the demonism in the world. Though thousands of miles from Oregon, still when he
smells that savage musk, the rending, goring bison herds are as present as to
the deserted wild foal of the prairies, which this instant they may be
trampling into dust.
Thus,
then, the muffled rollings of a milky sea; the bleak rustlings of the festooned
frosts of mountains; the desolate shiftings of the windrowed snows of prairies;
all these, to Ishmael, are as the shaking of that buffalo robe to the
frightened colt!
Though
neither knows where lie the nameless things of which the mystic sign gives
forth such hints; yet with me, as with the colt, somewhere those things must
exist. Though in many of its aspects this visible world seems formed in love,
the invisible spheres were formed in fright.
But
not yet have we solved the incantation of this whiteness, and learned why it
appeals with such power to the soul; and more strange and far more
portentous—why, as we have seen, it is at once the most meaning symbol of
spiritual things, nay, the very veil of the Christian's Deity; and yet should
be as it is, the intensifying agent in things the most appalling to mankind.
Is
it that by its indefiniteness it shadows forth the heartless voids and
immensities of the universe, and thus stabs us from behind with the thought of
annihilation, when beholding the white depths of the milky way? Or is it, that
as in essence whiteness is not so much a colour as the visible absence of
colour; and at the same time the concrete of all colours; is it for these
reasons that there is such a dumb blankness, full of meaning, in a wide
landscape of snows—a colourless, all-colour of atheism from which we shrink?
And when we consider that other theory of the natural philosophers, that all
other earthly hues—every stately or lovely emblazoning—the sweet tinges of
sunset skies and woods; yea, and the gilded velvets of butterflies, and the
butterfly cheeks of young girls; all these are but subtile deceits, not
actually inherent in substances, but only laid on from without; so that all
deified Nature absolutely paints like the harlot, whose allurements cover
nothing but the charnel-house within; and when we proceed further, and consider
that the mystical cosmetic which produces every one of her hues, the great
principle of light, for ever remains white or colorless in itself, and if
operating without medium upon matter, would touch all objects, even tulips and
roses, with its own blank tinge—pondering all this, the palsied universe lies
before us a leper; and like wilful travellers in Lapland, who refuse to wear
coloured and colouring glasses upon their eyes, so the wretched infidel gazes
himself blind at the monumental white shroud that wraps all the prospect around
him. And of all these things the Albino whale was the symbol. Wonder ye then at
the fiery hunt?
CHAPTER
43. Hark!
“HIST!
Did you hear that noise, Cabaco?”
It
was the middle-watch: a fair moonlight; the seamen were standing in a cordon,
extending from one of the fresh-water butts in the waist, to the scuttle-butt
near the taffrail. In this manner, they passed the buckets to fill the
scuttle-butt. Standing, for the most part, on the hallowed precincts of the
quarter-deck, they were careful not to speak or rustle their feet. From hand to
hand, the buckets went in the deepest silence, only broken by the occasional
flap of a sail, and the steady hum of the unceasingly advancing keel.
It
was in the midst of this repose, that Archy, one of the cordon, whose post was
near the after-hatches, whispered to his neighbor, a Cholo, the words above.
“Hist!
did you hear that noise, Cabaco?”
“Take
the bucket, will ye, Archy? what noise d'ye mean?”
“There
it is again—under the hatches—don't you hear it—a cough—it sounded like a
cough.”
“Cough
be damned! Pass along that return bucket.”
“There
again—there it is!—it sounds like two or three sleepers turning over, now!”
“Caramba!
have done, shipmate, will ye? It's the three soaked biscuits ye eat for supper
turning over inside of ye—nothing else. Look to the bucket!”
“Say
what ye will, shipmate; I've sharp ears.”
“Aye,
you are the chap, ain't ye, that heard the hum of the old Quakeress's
knitting-needles fifty miles at sea from Nantucket; you're the chap.”
“Grin
away; we'll see what turns up. Hark ye, Cabaco, there is somebody down in the
after-hold that has not yet been seen on deck; and I suspect our old Mogul
knows something of it too. I heard Stubb tell Flask, one morning watch, that
there was something of that sort in the wind.”
“Tish!
the bucket!”
CHAPTER
44. The Chart.
Had
you followed Captain Ahab down into his cabin after the squall that took place
on the night succeeding that wild ratification of his purpose with his crew,
you would have seen him go to a locker in the transom, and bringing out a large
wrinkled roll of yellowish sea charts, spread them before him on his
screwed-down table. Then seating himself before it, you would have seen him
intently study the various lines and shadings which there met his eye; and with
slow but steady pencil trace additional courses over spaces that before were
blank. At intervals, he would refer to piles of old log-books beside him,
wherein were set down the seasons and places in which, on various former
voyages of various ships, sperm whales had been captured or seen.
While
thus employed, the heavy pewter lamp suspended in chains over his head,
continually rocked with the motion of the ship, and for ever threw shifting
gleams and shadows of lines upon his wrinkled brow, till it almost seemed that
while he himself was marking out lines and courses on the wrinkled charts, some
invisible pencil was also tracing lines and courses upon the deeply marked
chart of his forehead.
But
it was not this night in particular that, in the solitude of his cabin, Ahab
thus pondered over his charts. Almost every night they were brought out; almost
every night some pencil marks were effaced, and others were substituted. For
with the charts of all four oceans before him, Ahab was threading a maze of
currents and eddies, with a view to the more certain accomplishment of that
monomaniac thought of his soul.
Now,
to any one not fully acquainted with the ways of the leviathans, it might seem
an absurdly hopeless task thus to seek out one solitary creature in the
unhooped oceans of this planet. But not so did it seem to Ahab, who knew the
sets of all tides and currents; and thereby calculating the driftings of the
sperm whale's food; and, also, calling to mind the regular, ascertained seasons
for hunting him in particular latitudes; could arrive at reasonable surmises,
almost approaching to certainties, concerning the timeliest day to be upon this
or that ground in search of his prey.
So
assured, indeed, is the fact concerning the periodicalness of the sperm whale's
resorting to given waters, that many hunters believe that, could he be closely
observed and studied throughout the world; were the logs for one voyage of the
entire whale fleet carefully collated, then the migrations of the sperm whale
would be found to correspond in invariability to those of the herring-shoals or
the flights of swallows. On this hint, attempts have been made to construct
elaborate migratory charts of the sperm whale.*
*Since the above was written, the statement is happily borne
out by an official circular, issued by Lieutenant Maury, of
the National Observatory, Washington, April 16th, 1851. By
that circular, it appears that precisely such a chart is in
course of completion; and portions of it are presented in
the circular. “This chart divides the ocean into districts
of five degrees of latitude by five degrees of longitude;
perpendicularly through each of which districts are twelve
columns for the twelve months; and horizontally through each
of which districts are three lines; one to show the number
of days that have been spent in each month in every
district, and the two others to show the number of days in
which whales, sperm or right, have been seen.”
Besides,
when making a passage from one feeding-ground to another, the sperm whales,
guided by some infallible instinct—say, rather, secret intelligence from the
Deity—mostly swim in veins, as they are called; continuing their way along a
given ocean-line with such undeviating exactitude, that no ship ever sailed her
course, by any chart, with one tithe of such marvellous precision. Though, in
these cases, the direction taken by any one whale be straight as a surveyor's
parallel, and though the line of advance be strictly confined to its own
unavoidable, straight wake, yet the arbitrary vein in which at these times he
is said to swim, generally embraces some few miles in width (more or less, as
the vein is presumed to expand or contract); but never exceeds the visual sweep
from the whale-ship's mast-heads, when circumspectly gliding along this magic
zone. The sum is, that at particular seasons within that breadth and along that
path, migrating whales may with great confidence be looked for.
And
hence not only at substantiated times, upon well known separate
feeding-grounds, could Ahab hope to encounter his prey; but in crossing the
widest expanses of water between those grounds he could, by his art, so place
and time himself on his way, as even then not to be wholly without prospect of
a meeting.
There
was a circumstance which at first sight seemed to entangle his delirious but
still methodical scheme. But not so in the reality, perhaps. Though the gregarious
sperm whales have their regular seasons for particular grounds, yet in general
you cannot conclude that the herds which haunted such and such a latitude or
longitude this year, say, will turn out to be identically the same with those
that were found there the preceding season; though there are peculiar and
unquestionable instances where the contrary of this has proved true. In
general, the same remark, only within a less wide limit, applies to the
solitaries and hermits among the matured, aged sperm whales. So that though
Moby Dick had in a former year been seen, for example, on what is called the
Seychelle ground in the Indian ocean, or Volcano Bay on the Japanese Coast; yet
it did not follow, that were the Pequod to visit either of those spots at any subsequent
corresponding season, she would infallibly encounter him there. So, too, with
some other feeding grounds, where he had at times revealed himself. But all
these seemed only his casual stopping-places and ocean-inns, so to speak, not
his places of prolonged abode. And where Ahab's chances of accomplishing his
object have hitherto been spoken of, allusion has only been made to whatever
way-side, antecedent, extra prospects were his, ere a particular set time or
place were attained, when all possibilities would become probabilities, and, as
Ahab fondly thought, every possibility the next thing to a certainty. That
particular set time and place were conjoined in the one technical phrase—the
Season-on-the-Line. For there and then, for several consecutive years, Moby
Dick had been periodically descried, lingering in those waters for awhile, as
the sun, in its annual round, loiters for a predicted interval in any one sign
of the Zodiac. There it was, too, that most of the deadly encounters with the
white whale had taken place; there the waves were storied with his deeds; there
also was that tragic spot where the monomaniac old man had found the awful
motive to his vengeance. But in the cautious comprehensiveness and unloitering
vigilance with which Ahab threw his brooding soul into this unfaltering hunt,
he would not permit himself to rest all his hopes upon the one crowning fact
above mentioned, however flattering it might be to those hopes; nor in the
sleeplessness of his vow could he so tranquillize his unquiet heart as to
postpone all intervening quest.
Now,
the Pequod had sailed from Nantucket at the very beginning of the
Season-on-the-Line. No possible endeavor then could enable her commander to
make the great passage southwards, double Cape Horn, and then running down
sixty degrees of latitude arrive in the equatorial Pacific in time to cruise
there. Therefore, he must wait for the next ensuing season. Yet the premature
hour of the Pequod's sailing had, perhaps, been correctly selected by Ahab,
with a view to this very complexion of things. Because, an interval of three
hundred and sixty-five days and nights was before him; an interval which,
instead of impatiently enduring ashore, he would spend in a miscellaneous hunt;
if by chance the White Whale, spending his vacation in seas far remote from his
periodical feeding-grounds, should turn up his wrinkled brow off the Persian
Gulf, or in the Bengal Bay, or China Seas, or in any other waters haunted by
his race. So that Monsoons, Pampas, Nor'-Westers, Harmattans, Trades; any wind
but the Levanter and Simoon, might blow Moby Dick into the devious zig-zag
world-circle of the Pequod's circumnavigating wake.
But
granting all this; yet, regarded discreetly and coolly, seems it not but a mad
idea, this; that in the broad boundless ocean, one solitary whale, even if
encountered, should be thought capable of individual recognition from his
hunter, even as a white-bearded Mufti in the thronged thoroughfares of
Constantinople? Yes. For the peculiar snow-white brow of Moby Dick, and his
snow-white hump, could not but be unmistakable. And have I not tallied the
whale, Ahab would mutter to himself, as after poring over his charts till long
after midnight he would throw himself back in reveries—tallied him, and shall
he escape? His broad fins are bored, and scalloped out like a lost sheep's ear!
And here, his mad mind would run on in a breathless race; till a weariness and
faintness of pondering came over him; and in the open air of the deck he would
seek to recover his strength. Ah, God! what trances of torments does that man
endure who is consumed with one unachieved revengeful desire. He sleeps with
clenched hands; and wakes with his own bloody nails in his palms.
Often,
when forced from his hammock by exhausting and intolerably vivid dreams of the
night, which, resuming his own intense thoughts through the day, carried them
on amid a clashing of phrensies, and whirled them round and round and round in
his blazing brain, till the very throbbing of his life-spot became insufferable
anguish; and when, as was sometimes the case, these spiritual throes in him
heaved his being up from its base, and a chasm seemed opening in him, from
which forked flames and lightnings shot up, and accursed fiends beckoned him to
leap down among them; when this hell in himself yawned beneath him, a wild cry
would be heard through the ship; and with glaring eyes Ahab would burst from
his state room, as though escaping from a bed that was on fire. Yet these,
perhaps, instead of being the unsuppressable symptoms of some latent weakness,
or fright at his own resolve, were but the plainest tokens of its intensity.
For, at such times, crazy Ahab, the scheming, unappeasedly steadfast hunter of
the white whale; this Ahab that had gone to his hammock, was not the agent that
so caused him to burst from it in horror again. The latter was the eternal,
living principle or soul in him; and in sleep, being for the time dissociated
from the characterizing mind, which at other times employed it for its outer
vehicle or agent, it spontaneously sought escape from the scorching contiguity
of the frantic thing, of which, for the time, it was no longer an integral. But
as the mind does not exist unless leagued with the soul, therefore it must have
been that, in Ahab's case, yielding up all his thoughts and fancies to his one
supreme purpose; that purpose, by its own sheer inveteracy of will, forced
itself against gods and devils into a kind of self-assumed, independent being
of its own. Nay, could grimly live and burn, while the common vitality to which
it was conjoined, fled horror-stricken from the unbidden and unfathered birth.
Therefore, the tormented spirit that glared out of bodily eyes, when what
seemed Ahab rushed from his room, was for the time but a vacated thing, a
formless somnambulistic being, a ray of living light, to be sure, but without
an object to colour, and therefore a blankness in itself. God help thee, old
man, thy thoughts have created a creature in thee; and he whose intense
thinking thus makes him a Prometheus; a vulture feeds upon that heart for ever;
that vulture the very creature he creates.
Comments
Post a Comment